Form 10-K
Table of Contents

UNITED STATES SECURITIES AND EXCHANGE COMMISSION

Washington, D.C. 20549

FORM 10-K

[X] Annual Report Pursuant To Section 13 Or 15(d) Of The Securities Exchange Act Of 1934

For the fiscal year ended December 31, 2011

Or

[  ] Transition Report Pursuant To Section 13 Or 15(d) Of The Securities Exchange Act Of 1934

For The Transition Period From          To         

Commission File Number 0-28274

Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated

(Exact name of registrant as specified in its charter)

Florida

(State or other jurisdiction of

incorporation or organization)

 

56-1383460

(IRS Employer

Identification No.)

400 N. Ashley Drive, Suite 2800, Tampa, Florida

(Address of principal executive offices)

 

33602

(Zip Code)

(813) 274-1000

(Registrant’s telephone number, including area code)

Securities registered pursuant to Section 12(b) of the Act:

Title of Each Class   Name of each exchange on which registered
Common Stock $.01 Par Value   NASDAQ Stock Market, LLC

Securities registered pursuant to Section 12(g) of the Act: None

Indicate by check mark if the registrant is a well-known seasoned issuer, as defined in Rule 405 of the Securities Act.

Yes [  ]                    No [X]

Indicate by check mark if the registrant is not required to file reports pursuant to Section 13 or Section 15(d) of the Exchange Act.

Yes [  ]                    No [X]

Indicate by check mark whether the registrant (1) has filed all reports required to be filed by Section 13 or 15 (d) of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934 during the preceding 12 months (or for such shorter period that the registrant was required to file such reports), and (2) has been subject to such filing requirements for the past 90 days.

Yes [X]                    No [  ]

Indicate by check mark whether the registrant has submitted electronically and posted on its corporate Web site, if any, every Interactive Data File required to be submitted and posted pursuant to Rule 405 of Regulation S-T (§ 232.405 of this chapter) during the preceding 12 months (or for such shorter period that the registrant was required to submit and post such files).

Yes [X]                    No [  ]

Indicate by check mark if disclosure of delinquent filers pursuant to Item 405 of Regulation S-K is not contained herein, and will not be contained, to the best of registrant’s knowledge, in definitive proxy or information statements incorporated by reference in Part III of this Form 10-K or any amendment to this Form 10-K.  [X]

Indicate by check mark whether the registrant is a large accelerated filer, an accelerated filer, a non-accelerated filer or a smaller reporting company. See the definitions of “accelerated filer,” “large accelerated filer” and “smaller reporting company” in Rule 12b-2 of the Exchange Act (Check one):

Large accelerated filer [X]              Accelerated filer [  ]              Non-accelerated filer [  ]              Smaller reporting company [  ]

Indicate by check mark whether the registrant is a shell company (as defined in Rule 12b-2 of the Exchange Act).

Yes [  ]                    No [X]

The aggregate market value of the shares of voting common stock held by non-affiliates of the Registrant computed by reference to the closing sales price of such shares on the NASDAQ Global Select Market on June 30, 2011, the last business day of the Registrant’s most recently completed second fiscal quarter, was $979,138,197.

As of February 21, 2012, there were 44,097,423 outstanding shares of common stock.

DOCUMENTS INCORPORATED BY REFERENCE:

Documents

   Form 10-K Reference
Portions of the Proxy Statement for the year 2012
Annual Meeting of Shareholders
   Part III Items 10–14


Table of Contents

TABLE OF CONTENTS

 

        Page No.

PART I

 

Item 1

 

Business

  3

Item 1A

 

Risk Factors

  11

Item 1B

 

Unresolved Staff Comments

  19

Item 2

 

Properties

  20

Item 3

 

Legal Proceedings

  23

Item 4

 

Mine Safety Disclosures

  23

PART II

 

Item 5

 

Market for the Registrant’s Common Equity, Related Shareholder Matters and Issuer Purchases of Equity Securities

  24

Item 6

 

Selected Financial Data

  26

Item 7

 

Management’s Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations

  28

Item 7A

 

Quantitative and Qualitative Disclosures About Market Risk

  47

Item 8

 

Financial Statements and Supplementary Data

  48

Item 9

 

Changes in and Disagreements with Accountants on Accounting and Financial Disclosure

  48

Item 9A

 

Controls and Procedures

  48

Item 9B

 

Other Information

  51

PART III

 

Item 10

 

Directors, Executive Officers and Corporate Governance

  51

Item 11

 

Executive Compensation

  51

Item 12

 

Security Ownership of Certain Beneficial Owners and Management and Related Shareholder Matters

  51

Item 13

 

Certain Relationships and Related Transactions, and Director Independence

  51

Item 14

 

Principal Accountant Fees and Services

  51

PART IV

 

Item 15

 

Exhibits and Financial Statement Schedules

  52

 

2


Table of Contents

PART I

Item 1. Business

General

Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and consolidated subsidiaries (“SYKES,” “our,” “us” or “we”) is a global leader in providing outsourced customer contact management solutions and services in the business process outsourcing (“BPO”) arena. We provide an array of sophisticated customer contact management solutions to a wide range of clients including Fortune 1000 companies, medium-sized businesses, and public institutions around the world, primarily in the communications, financial services, technology/consumer, transportation and leisure, healthcare and other verticals. We serve our clients through two geographic operating regions: the Americas (United States, Canada, Latin America, Australia and the Asia Pacific Rim) and EMEA (Europe, the Middle East and Africa). Our Americas and EMEA groups primarily provide customer contact management services (with an emphasis on inbound technical support and customer service), which includes customer assistance, healthcare and roadside assistance, technical support and product sales to our clients’ customers. These services are delivered through multiple communication channels including phone, e-mail, Internet, text messaging and chat. We also provide various enterprise support services in the United States that include services for our clients’ internal support operations, from technical staffing services to outsourced corporate help desk services. In Europe, we also provide fulfillment services including multilingual sales order processing via the Internet and phone, inventory control, product delivery and product returns handling. (See Note 27, Segments and Geographic Information, of the accompanying “Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements” for further information on our segments.) Our complete service offering helps our clients acquire, retain and increase the lifetime value of their customer relationships. We have developed an extensive global reach with customer contact management centers across six continents, including North America, South America, Europe, Asia, Australia and Africa. We deliver cost-effective solutions that enhance the customer service experience, promote stronger brand loyalty, and bring about high levels of performance and profitability.

SYKES was founded in 1977 in North Carolina and we moved our headquarters to Florida in 1993. In March 1996, we changed our state of incorporation from North Carolina to Florida. Our headquarters are located at 400 North Ashley Drive, Suite 2800, Tampa, Florida 33602, and our telephone number is (813) 274-1000.

In November 2011, we announced a plan to rationalize seats in certain U.S. sites and close certain locations in EMEA in an ongoing effort to streamline excess capacity related to the acquisition of ICT Group, Inc. (“ICT”) and align it with the needs of the market, optimize capacity utilization and improve overall profitability. The costs associated with the plan include facility-related costs, impairments of long-lived assets, program transfer costs and anticipated severance-related costs.

In November 2011, we committed to a plan to sell our operations in Spain. We have reflected the operating results related to the operations in Spain as discontinued operations in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations for all periods presented and the assets and related liabilities as held for sale in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet as of December 31, 2011.

In December 2010, we sold our Argentine operations pursuant to stock purchase agreements, dated December 16, 2010 and December 29, 2010. We have reflected the operating results related to the Argentine operations as discontinued operations in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations for all periods presented.

On February 2, 2010, we completed the acquisition of ICT, a Pennsylvania corporation and a leading global provider of outsourced customer management and BPO solutions, pursuant to the Agreement and Plan of Merger, dated October 5, 2009. We refer to such acquisition herein as the “ICT acquisition.” We have reflected the combined operating results in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for the year ended December 31, 2011 and the period from February 2, 2010 to December 31, 2010.

Our Annual Report on Form 10-K, Quarterly Reports on Form 10-Q, Current Reports on Form 8-K, and amendments to those reports, as well as our proxy statements and other materials which are filed with, or furnished to, the Securities and Exchange Commission (“SEC”) are made available, free of charge, on or through our Internet website at www.sykes.com (click on “Investor Relations” and then “SEC Filings” under the heading “Financial Information”) as soon as reasonably practicable after they are filed with, or furnished to, the SEC.

 

3


Table of Contents

Industry Overview

We believe that growth for outsourced customer contact management solutions and services will be fueled by the trend of global Fortune 1000 companies and medium-sized businesses turning to outsourcers to provide high-quality, cost-effective, value-added customer contact management solutions. Businesses continue to move toward integrated solutions that consist of a combination of support from our onshore markets in the United States, Canada, Australia, Africa, and Europe and offshore markets in the Asia Pacific Rim and Latin America.

In today’s ever-changing marketplace, companies require innovative customer contact management solutions that allow them to enhance the end user’s experience with their products and services, strengthen and enhance their company brands, maximize the lifetime value of their customers, efficiently and effectively deliver human interaction when customers value it most, and deploy best-in-class customer management strategies, processes and technologies.

Global competition, pricing pressures, softness in the global economy and rapid changes in technology continue to make it difficult for companies to cost effectively maintain the in-house personnel necessary to handle all of their customer contact management needs. As a result, companies are continuing to turn to outsourcers to perform specialized functions and services in the customer contact management arena. By working in partnership with outsourcers, companies can ensure that the crucial task of retaining and growing their customer base is addressed.

Companies outsource customer contact management solutions for various reasons, including the need to focus on core competencies, to drive service excellence and execution, to achieve cost savings, to scale and grow geographies and niche markets, and to efficiently allocate capital within their organizations.

To address these needs, we offer global customer contact management solutions that focus on proactively identifying and solving our clients’ business challenges. We provide consistent high-value support for our clients’ customers across the globe in a multitude of languages, leveraging our dynamic, secure communications infrastructure and our global footprint that reaches across 23 countries (which excludes Spain as a result of the planned sale of those operations). This global footprint includes established operations in both onshore and offshore geographic markets where companies have access to high-quality customer contact management solutions at lower costs compared to other markets.

Business Strategy

Our goal is to proactively provide enhanced and value-added customer contact management solutions and services, acting as a partner in our clients’ business. We anticipate trends and deliver new ways of growing our clients’ customer satisfaction and retention rates, and thus profit, through timely, insightful and proven solutions.

Our business strategy encompasses building long-term client relationships, capitalizing on our expert worldwide response team, leveraging our depth of relevant experience and expanding both organically and through acquisitions. The principles of this strategy include the following:

Build Long-Term Client Relationships Through Operational Excellence. We believe that providing high-value, high-quality service is critical in our clients’ decisions to outsource and in building long-term relationships with our clients. To ensure service excellence and consistency across each of our centers globally, we leverage a portfolio of techniques including SYKES Science of Service®. This standard is a compilation of more than 30 years of experience and best practices. Every customer contact management center strives to meet or exceed the standard, which addresses leadership, hiring and training, performance management down to the agent level, forecasting and scheduling, and the client relationship including continuous improvement, disaster recovery plans and feedback.

Capitalize on Our Worldwide Response Team. Companies are demanding a customer contact management solution that is global in nature — one of our key strengths. In addition to our network of customer contact management centers throughout North America, Australia and Europe, we continue to develop our global delivery model with offshore and near-shore operations in The Philippines, The Peoples Republic of China, India, Costa Rica, El Salvador, Mexico, Brazil, Egypt and Romania, offering our clients a secure, high-quality solution tailored to the needs of their diverse and global markets.

 

4


Table of Contents

Maintain a Competitive Advantage Through Technology Solutions. For more than 30 years, we have been an innovative pioneer in delivering customer contact management solutions. We seek to maintain a competitive advantage and differentiation by utilizing technology to consistently deliver innovative service solutions, ultimately enhancing the client’s relationship with its customers and generating revenue growth. This includes knowledge solutions for agents and end customers, automatic call distributors, interactive voice response systems, intelligent call routing and workforce management capabilities based on agent skill and availability, call tracking software, quality management systems and computer-telephony integration (“CTI”). CTI enables our customer contact management centers to serve as transparent extensions for our clients, receive telephone calls and data directly from our clients’ systems, and report detailed information concerning the status and results of our services on a daily basis.

Through strategic technology relationships, we are able to provide fully integrated communication services encompassing e-mail, chat, text messaging and Internet self-service platforms. In addition, we utilize Global Direct, our customer relationship management (“CRM”)/e-commerce application for our European fulfillment operations. Global Direct establishes a platform whereby our clients can manage all customer profile and contact information from every communication channel, making it a viable customer-facing infrastructure solution to support their CRM initiatives.

We are also continuing to capitalize on sophisticated technological capabilities, including our current digital private network that provides us the ability to manage call volumes more efficiently by load balancing calls and data between customer contact management centers over the same network. Our converged voice and data digital communications network provides a high-quality, fault tolerant global network for the transport of Voice Over Internet Protocol communications and fully integrates with emergent Internet Protocol telephony systems as well as traditional Time Domain Multiplexing telephony systems. Our flexible, secure and scalable network infrastructure allows us to rapidly respond to changes in client voice and data traffic and quickly establish support operations for new and existing clients.

Continue to Grow Our Business Organically and through Acquisitions. We have grown our customer contact management outsourcing operations utilizing a strategy of both internal organic growth and external acquisitions.

Our organic growth strategy is to target markets, clients, verticals, delivery geographies and service mix that will expand our addressable market opportunity, and thus drive our organic growth. Entry into Brazil, Romania, Egypt and El Salvador are examples of how we leveraged these delivery geographies to further penetrate our base of both existing and new clients, verticals and service mix in order to drive organic growth.

Growth Strategy

Applying the key principles of our business strategy, we execute our growth strategy by focusing on the following levers.

Maximizing Capacity Utilization Rates and Strategically Adding Seat Capacity. The key driver of our revenues is increasing the capacity utilization rate in conjunction with seat capacity additions. We plan to sustain our focus on increasing the capacity utilization rate by further penetrating existing clients, adding new clients and rationalizing seat capacity as deemed necessary. Additionally, we have the ability to expand our current seat capacity of 41,300 through strategic acquisitions and organic expansion.

Broadening Global Delivery Footprint. Just as increased capacity utilization rates and increased seat capacity are key drivers of our revenues, where we deploy the seat capacity geographically is also important. By broadening and continuously strengthening our brick-and-mortar global delivery footprint, we are able to meet both our existing and new clients’ customer contact management needs globally as they enter new markets. At the end of 2011, our global delivery footprint spanned 23 countries. As a multi-channel provider of phone, e-mail, Internet, text messaging and chat customer contact management services, we continue to invest in our virtual at-home agent offering, which augments our existing brick-and-mortar global delivery footprint. Additionally, with the rapid emergence of on-line communities, examples of which are chat rooms, Facebook and Twitter, we continue to make on-going investments in our social media service offerings, which can be leveraged across both our brick-and-mortar and at-home agent delivery platforms.

Increasing Share of Seats Within Existing Clients and Winning New Clients. We provide customer contact management support to numerous multinational companies. With this client list, we have the opportunity to grow

 

5


Table of Contents

our client base. We strive to achieve this by winning a greater share of our clients’ in-house seats as well as gain share from our competitors by providing consistently high-quality service. In addition, as we further leverage our knowledge of verticals and business lines, we plan to win new clients as a way to broaden our base of growth.

Diversifying Verticals and Expanding Service Lines. To mitigate the impact of any negative economic and product cycles on our growth rate, we continue to seek ways to diversify into verticals and service lines that have countercyclical features and healthy growth rates. We are targeting the following verticals for growth: communications, financial services, technology/consumer, healthcare and transportation and leisure. These verticals cover various business lines, including wireless services, broadband, retail banking, credit card/consumer fraud protection, content moderation, telemedicine and travel portals.

Creating Value-Added Service Enhancements. To improve both revenue and margin expansion, we will continue to introduce new service offerings and add-on enhancements. Bilingual customer support and back office services are examples of horizontal service offerings, while data analytics and process improvement products are examples of add-on enhancements.

Continuing to Focus on Expanding the Addressable Market Opportunities. As part of our growth strategy, we continually seek to expand the number of markets we serve. The United States, Canada and Germany, for instance, are markets which are served by either in-country, from offshore regions or a combination thereof. We continually seek ways to broaden the addressable market for our customer contact management services. We currently operate in 17 markets, which exclude Spain as a result of the planned sale of those operations.

Services

We specialize in providing inbound outsourced customer contact management solutions in the BPO arena on a global basis. Our customer contact management services are provided through two operating segments — the Americas and EMEA. The Americas region, representing 82% of consolidated revenues in 2011, includes the United States, Canada, Latin America, Australia and the Asia Pacific Rim. The sites within Latin America and the Asia Pacific Rim are included in the Americas region as they provide a significant service delivery vehicle for U.S. based companies that are utilizing our customer contact management solutions in these locations to support their customer care needs. The EMEA region, representing 18% of consolidated revenues in 2011, includes Europe, the Middle East and Africa. See Note 27, Segments and Geographic Information, of the accompanying “Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements” for further information on our segments. The following is a description of our customer contact management solutions:

Outsourced Customer Contact Management Services. Our outsourced customer contact management services represented approximately 98% of total 2011 consolidated revenues. Each year since 2008, we have handled over 250 million customer contacts including phone, e-mail, Internet, text messaging and chat throughout the Americas and EMEA regions. We provide these services utilizing our advanced technology infrastructure, human resource management skills and industry experience. These services include:

 

   

Customer care — Customer care contacts primarily include product information requests, describing product features, activating customer accounts, resolving complaints, cross-selling/up-selling, handling billing inquiries, changing addresses, claims handling, ordering/reservations, prequalification and warranty management, providing health information and roadside assistance;

 

   

Technical support — Technical support contacts primarily include handling inquiries regarding hardware, software, communications services, communications equipment, Internet access technology and Internet portal usage; and

 

   

Acquisition — Our acquisition services are primarily focused on inbound up-selling of our client’s products and services.

We provide these services, primarily inbound customer calls, through our extensive global network of customer contact management centers in a multitude of languages. Our technology infrastructure and managed service solutions allow for effective distribution of calls to one or more centers. These technology offerings provide our clients and us with the leading edge tools needed to maximize quality and customer satisfaction while controlling and minimizing costs.

Fulfillment Services. In Europe, we offer fulfillment services that are integrated with our customer care and technical support services. Our fulfillment solutions include multilingual sales order processing via the Internet and phone, payment processing, inventory control, product delivery and product returns handling.

 

6


Table of Contents

Enterprise Support Services. In the United States, we provide a range of enterprise support services including technical staffing services and outsourced corporate help desk solutions.

Operations

Customer Contact Management Centers. We operate across 23 countries in 77 customer contact management centers (excluding Spain), which breakdown as follows: 19 centers across Europe, Egypt and South Africa, 26 centers in the United States, 10 centers in Canada, 3 centers in Australia and 19 centers offshore, including The Peoples Republic of China, The Philippines, Costa Rica, El Salvador, India, Mexico and Brazil.

In an effort to stay ahead of industry offshoring trends, we opened our first offshore customer contact management centers in The Philippines and Costa Rica over ten years ago. Since then, we have expanded into centers in The People’s Republic of China, India, El Salvador, Mexico and Brazil.

We utilize a sophisticated workforce management system to provide efficient scheduling of personnel. Our internally developed digital private communications network complements our workforce by allowing for effective call volume management and disaster recovery backup. Through this network and our dynamic intelligent call routing capabilities, we can rapidly respond to changes in client call volumes and move call volume traffic based on agent availability and skill throughout our network of centers, improving the responsiveness and productivity of our agents. We also can offer cost competitive solutions for taking calls to our offshore locations.

Our data warehouse captures and downloads customer contact information for reporting on a daily, real-time and historical basis. This data provides our clients with direct visibility into the services that we are providing for them. The data warehouse supplies information for our performance management systems such as our agent scorecarding application, which provides management with the information required for effective management of our operations.

Our customer contact management centers are protected by a fire extinguishing system, backup generators with significant capacity and 24 hour refueling contracts and short-term battery backups in the event of a power outage, reduced voltage or a power surge. Rerouting of call volumes to other customer contact management centers is also available in the event of a telecommunications failure, natural disaster or other emergency. Security measures are imposed to prevent unauthorized physical access. Software and related data files are backed up daily and stored off site at multiple locations. We carry business interruption insurance covering interruptions that might occur as a result of certain types of damage to our business.

Fulfillment Centers. We currently have two fulfillment centers located in Europe. We provide our fulfillment services primarily to certain clients operating in Europe who desire this complementary service in connection with outsourced customer contact management services.

Enterprise Support Services Offices. Our two enterprise support services offices are located in metropolitan areas in the United States to provide a recruiting platform for high-end knowledge workers and to establish a local presence to service major accounts.

Quality Assurance

We believe that providing consistent high-quality service is critical in our clients’ decision to outsource and in building long-term relationships with our clients. It is also our belief and commitment that quality is the responsibility of each individual at every level of the organization. To ensure service excellence and continuity across our organization, we have developed an integrated Quality Assurance program consisting of three major components:

 

   

The certification of client accounts and customer contact management centers to the SYKES Science of Service® and Site of Excellence programs;

   

The application of continuous improvement through application of our Data Analytics and Six Sigma techniques; and

   

The application of process audits to all work procedures.

The SYKES Science of Service® is a standard that was developed based on our more than 30 years of experience,

 

7


Table of Contents

and best practices from industry standards such as the Malcolm Baldrige National Quality Award and Customer Operations Performance Center. It specifies the requirements that must be met in each of our customer contact management centers including measured performance against our standard operating procedures. It has a well-defined auditing process that ensures compliance with the SYKES’ standards. Our focus is on quality, predictability and consistency over time, not just point in time certification.

The application of continuous improvement is based upon the five-step Six Sigma cycle, which we have fine-tuned to apply specifically to our service industry. All managers are responsible for continuous improvement in their operations.

Process audits are used to verify that processes and procedures are consistently executed as required by established documentation. Process audits are applicable to services being provided for the client and internal procedures.

Sales and Marketing

Our sales and marketing objective is to leverage our expertise and global presence to develop long-term relationships with existing and future clients. Our customer contact management solutions have been developed to help our clients acquire, retain and increase the value of their customer relationships. Our plans for increasing our visibility include market-focused advertising, consultative personal visits, participation in market-specific trade shows and seminars, speaking engagements, articles and white papers, and our website.

Our sales force is composed of business development managers who pursue new business opportunities and strategic account managers who manage and grow relationships with existing accounts. We emphasize account development to strengthen relationships with existing clients. Business development management and strategic account managers are assigned to markets in their area of expertise in order to develop a complete understanding of each client’s particular needs, to form strong client relationships and encourage cross-selling of our other service offerings. We have inside customer sales representatives who receive customer inquiries and who provide outbound lead generation for the business development managers. We also have relationships with channel partners including systems integrators, software and hardware vendors and value-added resellers, where we pair our solutions and services with their product offering or focus. We plan to maintain and expand these relationships as part of our sales and marketing strategy.

As part of our marketing efforts, we invite existing and potential clients to visit our customer contact management centers, where we can demonstrate the expertise of our skilled staff in partnering to deliver new ways of growing clients’ customer satisfaction and retention rates, and thus profit, through timely, insightful and proven solutions. During these visits, we demonstrate our ability to quickly and effectively support a new client or scale business from an existing client by emphasizing our systematic approach to implementing customer contact solutions throughout the world.

Clients

We provide service to clients from our locations in the United States, Canada, Latin America, Australia, the Asia Pacific Rim, Europe and Africa. These clients are Fortune 1000 corporations, medium-sized businesses and public institutions, which span the communications, financial services, technology/consumer, transportation and leisure, healthcare and other industries. Revenue by vertical market for 2011, as a percentage of our consolidated revenues, was 31% for communications, 29% for financial services, 19% for technology/consumer, 7% for transportation and leisure, 6% for healthcare, 6% for retail and 2% for all other vertical markets, including government and utilities. We believe our globally recognized client base presents opportunities for further cross marketing of our services.

Total consolidated revenues included $132.7 million, or 11.3%, of consolidated revenues for 2011, from AT&T Corporation, a major provider of communication services for which we provide various customer support services, compared to $154.1 million, or 13.7% for 2010. This included $129.4 million in revenues from the Americas and $3.3 million in revenues from EMEA for 2011 and $147.6 million in revenues from the Americas and $6.5 million in revenues from EMEA for 2010. Our top ten clients accounted for approximately 45% of our consolidated revenues in 2011, an increase from 42% in 2010. The loss of (or the failure to retain a significant amount of business with) any of our key clients could have a material adverse effect on our performance. Many of our contracts contain penalty provisions for failure to meet minimum service levels and are cancelable by the client at any time or on short notice. Also, clients may unilaterally reduce their use of our services under our contracts without penalty.

 

8


Table of Contents

Competition

The industry in which we operate is global and, therefore, highly fragmented and extremely competitive. While many companies provide customer contact management solutions and services, we believe no one company is dominant in the industry.

In most cases, our principal competition stems from our existing and potential clients’ in-house customer contact management operations. When it is not the in-house operations of a client, our public and private direct competition includes TeleTech, Sitel, Convergys, West Corporation, Stream, Aegis BPO, Sutherland, 24/7 Customer, vCustomer, StarTek, Atento, Teleperformance, and NCO Group as well as the customer care arm of such companies as Accenture, Wipro, Infosys and IBM. There are other numerous and varied providers of such services, including firms specializing in various CRM consulting, other customer management solutions providers, niche or large market companies, as well as product distribution companies that provide fulfillment services. Some of these companies possess substantially greater resources, greater name recognition and a more established customer base than we do.

We believe that the most significant competitive factors in the sale of outsourced customer contact management services include service quality, tailored value-added service offerings, industry experience, advanced technological capabilities, global coverage, reliability, scalability, security, price and financial strength. As a result of intense competition, outsourced customer contact management solutions and services frequently are subject to pricing pressure. Clients also require outsourcers to be able to provide services in multiple locations. Competition for contracts for many of our services takes the form of competitive bidding in response to requests for proposal.

Intellectual Property

We own and/or have applied to register numerous trademarks and service marks in the United States and/or in many additional countries throughout the world. Our registered trademarks and service marks include SYKES®, REAL PEOPLE. REAL SOLUTIONS®, SCIENCE OF SERVICE®, CLEARCALL®, I AM SYKES. HOW FAR WILL YOU LET ME TAKE YOU? ®, ICT® and SOUND OF SERVICE®. The duration of trademark registrations varies from country to country, but may generally be renewed indefinitely as long as they are in use and/or their registrations are properly maintained.

Employees

As of January 31, 2012, we had approximately 41,000 employees worldwide, including 38,100 customer contact agents handling technical and customer support inquiries at our centers, 2,600 in management, administration, information technology, finance, sales and marketing roles, 100 in enterprise support services, and 200 in fulfillment services.

We have never suffered a material interruption of business as a result of a labor dispute. Due to laws in their respective countries, Brazil and Spain require that wages are subject to collective bargaining for approximately 200 non-management employees in Brazil and approximately 1,600 in Spain. The negotiations are conducted irrespective of the individual employee’s membership status relative to the union. We consider our relations with our employees worldwide to be satisfactory.

We employ personnel through a continually updated recruiting network. This network includes a seasoned team of recruiters, competency-based selection standards and the sharing of global best practices in order to advertise and source qualified candidates through proven recruiting techniques. Nonetheless, demand for qualified professionals with the required language and technical skills may still exceed supply at times as new skills are needed to keep pace with the requirements of customer engagements. As such, competition for such personnel is intense and employee turnover in our industry is high.

 

9


Table of Contents

Executive Officers

The following table provides the names and ages of our executive officers, and the positions and offices currently held by each of them:

 

Name    Age    Principal Position

 

Charles E. Sykes

   49    President and Chief Executive Officer and Director

W. Michael Kipphut

   58    Executive Vice President and Chief Financial Officer

James C. Hobby

   62    Executive Vice President, Global Operations

Jenna R. Nelson

   48    Executive Vice President, Global Human Resources

Daniel L. Hernandez

   45    Executive Vice President, Global Strategy

David L. Pearson

   53    Executive Vice President and Chief Information Officer

Lawrence R. Zingale

   56    Executive Vice President, Global Sales and Client Management

James T. Holder

   53    Executive Vice President, General Counsel and Corporate Secretary

William N. Rocktoff

   49    Global Vice President and Corporate Controller

Charles E. Sykes joined SYKES in 1986 and was named President and Chief Executive Officer and Director in August 2004. From July 2003 to August 2004, Mr. Sykes was the Chief Operating Officer. From March 2000 to June 2001, Mr. Sykes was Senior Vice President, Marketing, and in June 2001, he was appointed to the position of General Manager, Senior Vice President — the Americas. From December 1996 to March 2000, he served as Vice President, Sales, and held the position of Regional Manager of the Midwest Region for Professional Services from 1992 until 1996.

W. Michael Kipphut, C.P.A., joined SYKES in March 2000 as Vice President and Chief Financial Officer and was named Senior Vice President and Chief Financial Officer in June 2001. In May 2010, he was named Executive Vice President and Chief Financial Officer. From September 1998 to February 2000, Mr. Kipphut held the position of Vice President and Chief Financial Officer for USA Floral Products, Inc., a publicly-held, worldwide, perishable products distributor. From September 1994 until September 1998, Mr. Kipphut held the position of Vice President and Treasurer for Spalding & Evenflo Companies, Inc., a global manufacturer of consumer products. Previously, Mr. Kipphut held various financial positions, including Vice President and Treasurer, in his 17 years at Tyler Corporation, a publicly-held, diversified holding company.

James C. Hobby joined SYKES in August 2003 as Senior Vice President, the Americas, overseeing the daily operations, administration and development of SYKES’ customer care and enterprise support operations throughout North America, Latin America, the Asia Pacific Rim and India, and was named Senior Vice President, Global Operations, in January 2005. In May 2010, he was named Executive Vice President, Global Operations. Prior to joining SYKES, Mr. Hobby held several positions at Gateway, Inc., most recently serving as President of Consumer Customer Care since August 1999. From January 1999 to August 1999, Mr. Hobby served as Vice President of European Customer Care for Gateway, Inc. From January 1996 to January 1999, Mr. Hobby served as the Vice President of European Customer Service Centers at American Express. Prior to January 1996, Mr. Hobby held various senior management positions in customer care at FedEx Corporation since 1983, mostly recently serving as Managing Director, European Customer Service Operations.

Jenna R. Nelson joined SYKES in August 1993 and was named Senior Vice President, Human Resources, in July 2001. In May 2010, she was named Executive Vice President, Global Human Resources. From January 2001 until July 2001, Ms. Nelson held the position of Vice President, Human Resources. In August 1998, Ms. Nelson was appointed Vice President, Human Resources, and held the position of Director, Human Resources and Administration, from August 1996 to July 1998. From August 1993 until July 1996, Ms. Nelson served in various management positions within SYKES, including Director of Administration.

Daniel L. Hernandez joined SYKES in October 2003 as Senior Vice President, Global Strategy overseeing marketing, public relations, operational strategy and corporate development efforts worldwide. In May 2010, he was named Executive Vice President, Global Strategy. Prior to joining SYKES, Mr. Hernandez served as President and Chief Executive Officer of SBC Internet Services, a division of SBC Communications Inc., since March 2000. From February 1998 to March 2000, Mr. Hernandez held the position of Vice President/General Manager, Internet and System Operations, at Ameritech Interactive Media Services. Prior to February 1998, Mr. Hernandez held various management positions at US West Communications since joining the telecommunications provider in 1990.

 

10


Table of Contents

David L. Pearson joined SYKES in February 1997 as Vice President, Engineering, and was named Vice President, Technology Systems Management, in 2000 and Senior Vice President and Chief Information Officer in August 2004. In May 2010, he was named Executive Vice President and Chief Information Officer. Prior to SYKES, Mr. Pearson held various engineering and technical management roles over a fifteen year period, including eight years at Compaq Computer Corporation and five years at Texas Instruments.

Lawrence R. Zingale joined SYKES in January 2006 as Senior Vice President, Global Sales and Client Management. In May 2010, he was named Executive Vice President, Global Sales and Client Management. Prior to joining SYKES, Mr. Zingale served as Executive Vice President and Chief Operating Officer of StarTek, Inc. since 2002. From December 1999 until November 2001, Mr. Zingale served as President of the Americas at Stonehenge Telecom, Inc. From May 1997 until November 1999, Mr. Zingale served as President and Chief Operating Officer of International Community Marketing. From February 1980 until May 1997, Mr. Zingale held various senior level positions at AT&T.

James T. Holder, J.D., joined SYKES in December 2000 as General Counsel and was named Corporate Secretary in January 2001, Vice President in January 2004 and Senior Vice President in December 2006. In May 2010, he was named Executive Vice President. From November 1999 until November 2000, Mr. Holder served in a consulting capacity as Special Counsel to Checkers Drive-In Restaurants, Inc., a publicly held restaurant operator and franchisor. From November 1993 until November 1999, Mr. Holder served in various capacities at Checkers including Corporate Secretary, Chief Financial Officer and Senior Vice President and General Counsel.

William N. Rocktoff, C.P.A., joined SYKES in August 1997 as Corporate Controller and was named Treasurer and Corporate Controller in December 1999 and Vice President and Corporate Controller in March 2002. In January 2011, he was named Global Vice President and Corporate Controller. From November 1989 to August 1997, Mr. Rocktoff held various financial positions, including Corporate Controller, at Kimmins Corporation, a publicly-held contracting company.

Item 1A. Risk Factors

Factors Influencing Future Results and Accuracy of Forward-Looking Statements

This Annual Report on Form 10-K contains forward-looking statements (within the meaning of the Private Securities Litigation Reform Act of 1995) that are based on current expectations, estimates, forecasts, and projections about us, our beliefs, and assumptions made by us. In addition, we may make other written or oral statements, which constitute forward-looking statements, from time to time. Words such as “may,” “expects,” “projects,” “anticipates,” “intends,” “plans,” “believes,” “seeks,” “estimates,” variations of such words, and similar expressions are intended to identify such forward-looking statements. Similarly, statements that describe our future plans, objectives or goals also are forward-looking statements. These statements are not guarantees of future performance and are subject to a number of risks and uncertainties, including those discussed below and elsewhere in this Annual Report on Form 10-K. Our actual results may differ materially from what is expressed or forecasted in such forward-looking statements, and undue reliance should not be placed on such statements. All forward-looking statements are made as of the date hereof, and we undertake no obligation to update any forward-looking statements, whether as a result of new information, future events or otherwise.

Factors that could cause actual results to differ materially from what is expressed or forecasted in such forward-looking statements include, but are not limited to: the marketplace’s continued receptivity to our terms and elements of services offered under our standardized contract for future bundled service offerings; our ability to continue the growth of our service revenues through additional customer contact management centers; our ability to further penetrate into vertically integrated markets; our ability to expand revenues within the global markets; our ability to continue to establish a competitive advantage through sophisticated technological capabilities, and the following risk factors:

Risks Related to Our Business and Industry

Unfavorable general economic conditions could negatively impact our operating results and financial condition.

Unfavorable general economic conditions could negatively affect our business. While it is often difficult to predict the impact of general economic conditions on our business, these conditions could adversely affect the demand for some of our clients’ products and services and, in turn, could cause a decline in the demand for our services. Also,

 

11


Table of Contents

our clients may not be able to obtain adequate access to credit, which could affect their ability to make timely payments to us. If that were to occur, we could be required to increase our allowance for doubtful accounts, and the number of days outstanding for our accounts receivable could increase. In addition, we may not be able to renew our revolving credit facility at terms that are as favorable as those terms available under our current credit facility. Also, the group of lenders under our credit facility may not be able to fulfill their funding obligations, which could adversely impact our liquidity. For these reasons, among others, if the current economic conditions persist or decline, this could adversely affect our revenues, operating results and financial condition, as well as our ability to access debt under comparable terms and conditions.

Our business is dependent on key clients, and the loss of a key client could adversely affect our business and results of operations.

We derive a substantial portion of our revenues from a few key clients. Our top ten clients accounted for approximately 45% of our consolidated revenues in 2011. The loss of (or the failure to retain a significant amount of business with) any of our key clients could have a material adverse effect on our business, financial condition and results of operations. Many of our contracts contain penalty provisions for failure to meet minimum service levels and are cancelable by the client at any time or on short-term notice. Also, clients may unilaterally reduce their use of our services under these contracts without penalty. Thus, our contracts with our clients do not ensure that we will generate a minimum level of revenues.

Cyber attacks as well as improper disclosure or control of personal information could result in liability and harm our reputation, which could adversely affect our business and results of operations.

Our business is heavily dependent upon our computer and voice technologies, systems and platforms. Internal or external attacks on any of those could disrupt the normal operations of our call centers and impede our ability to provide critical services to our clients, thereby subjecting us to liability under our contracts. Additionally, our business involves the use, storage and transmission of information about our employees, our clients and customers of our clients. While we take measures to protect the security of, and unauthorized access to our systems, as well as the privacy of personal and proprietary information, it is possible that our security controls over our systems, as well as other security practices we follow, may not prevent the improper access to or disclosure of personally identifiable or proprietary information. Such disclosure could harm our reputation and subject us to liability under our contracts and laws that protect personal data, resulting in increased costs or loss of revenue. Further, data privacy is subject to frequently changing rules and regulations, which sometimes conflict among the various jurisdictions and countries in which we provide services. Our failure to adhere to or successfully implement processes in response to changing regulatory requirements in this area could result in legal liability or impairment to our reputation in the marketplace, which could have a material adverse effect on our business, financial condition and results of operations.

Our business is subject to substantial competition.

The markets for many of our services operate on a commoditized basis and are highly competitive and subject to rapid change. While many companies provide outsourced customer contact management services, we believe no one company is dominant in the industry. There are numerous and varied providers of our services, including firms specializing in call center operations, temporary staffing and personnel placement, consulting and integration firms, and niche providers of outsourced customer contact management services, many of whom compete in only certain markets. Our competitors include both companies who possess greater resources and name recognition than we do, as well as small niche providers that have few assets and regionalized (local) name recognition instead of global name recognition. In addition to our competitors, many companies who might utilize our services or the services of one of our competitors may utilize in-house personnel to perform such services. Increased competition, our failure to compete successfully, pricing pressures, loss of market share and loss of clients could have a material adverse effect on our business, financial condition and results of operations.

Many of our large clients purchase outsourced customer contact management services from multiple preferred vendors. We have experienced and continue to anticipate significant pricing pressure from these clients in order to remain a preferred vendor. These companies also require vendors to be able to provide services in multiple locations. Although we believe we can effectively meet our clients’ demands, there can be no assurance that we will be able to compete effectively with other outsourced customer contact management services companies on price. We believe that the most significant competitive factors in the sale of our core services include the standard requirements of service quality, tailored value-added service offerings, industry experience, advanced technological capabilities, global coverage, reliability, scalability, security, price and financial strength.

 

12


Table of Contents

The concentration of customer support centers in certain geographies poses risks to our operations which could adversely affect our financial condition.

Although we have call centers in many locations throughout the world, we have a concentration of centers in certain geographies outside of the U.S. and Canada, specifically The Philippines and Latin America. Our concentration of operations in those geographies is a result of our ability to access significant numbers of employees with certain language and other skills at costs that are advantageous. However, the concentration of business activities in any geographical area creates risks which could harm operations and our financial condition. Certain risks, such as natural disasters, armed conflict and military or civil unrest, political instability and disease transmission, as well as the risk of interruption to our delivery systems, is magnified when the realization of these, or any other risks, would effect a large portion of our business at once, which may result in a disproportionate increase in operating costs.

Our business is dependent on the trend toward outsourcing.

Our business and growth depend in large part on the industry trend toward outsourced customer contact management services. Outsourcing means that an entity contracts with a third party, such as us, to provide customer contact services rather than perform such services in-house. There can be no assurance that this trend will continue, as organizations may elect to perform such services themselves. A significant change in this trend could have a material adverse effect on our business, financial condition and results of operations. Additionally, there can be no assurance that our cross-selling efforts will cause clients to purchase additional services from us or adopt a single-source outsourcing approach.

We are subject to various uncertainties relating to future litigation.

We cannot predict whether any material suits, claims, or investigations may arise in the future. Regardless of the outcome of any future actions, claims, or investigations, we may incur substantial defense costs and such actions may cause a diversion of management time and attention. Also, it is possible that we may be required to pay substantial damages or settlement costs which could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition and results of operations.

Our industry is subject to rapid technological change which could affect our business and results of operations.

Rapid technological advances, frequent new product introductions and enhancements, and changes in client requirements characterize the market for outsourced customer contact management services. Technological advancements in voice recognition software, as well as self-provisioning and self-help software, along with call avoidance technologies, have the potential to adversely impact call volume growth and, therefore, revenues. Our future success will depend in large part on our ability to service new products, platforms and rapidly changing technology. These factors will require us to provide adequately trained personnel to address the increasingly sophisticated, complex and evolving needs of our clients. In addition, our ability to capitalize on our acquisitions will depend on our ability to continually enhance software and services and adapt such software to new hardware and operating system requirements. Any failure by us to anticipate or respond rapidly to technological advances, new products and enhancements, or changes in client requirements could have a material adverse effect on our business, financial condition and results of operations.

Our business relies heavily on technology and computer systems, which subjects us to various uncertainties.

We have invested significantly in sophisticated and specialized communications and computer technology and have focused on the application of this technology to meet our clients’ needs. We anticipate that it will be necessary to continue to invest in and develop new and enhanced technology on a timely basis to maintain our competitiveness. Significant capital expenditures may be required to keep our technology up-to-date. There can be no assurance that any of our information systems will be adequate to meet our future needs or that we will be able to incorporate new technology to enhance and develop our existing services. Moreover, investments in technology, including future investments in upgrades and enhancements to software, may not necessarily maintain our competitiveness. Our future success will also depend in part on our ability to anticipate and develop information technology solutions that keep pace with evolving industry standards and changing client demands.

 

13


Table of Contents

Emergency interruption of customer contact management center operations could affect our business and results of operations.

Our operations are dependent upon our ability to protect our customer contact management centers and our information databases against damage that may be caused by fire, earthquakes, severe weather and other disasters, power failure, telecommunications failures, unauthorized intrusion, computer viruses and other emergencies. The temporary or permanent loss of such systems could have a material adverse effect on our business, financial condition and results of operations. Notwithstanding precautions taken to protect us and our clients from events that could interrupt delivery of services, there can be no assurance that a fire, natural disaster, human error, equipment malfunction or inadequacy, or other event would not result in a prolonged interruption in our ability to provide services to our clients. Such an event could have a material adverse effect on our business, financial condition and results of operations.

Our operating results will be adversely affected if we are unable to maximize our facility capacity utilization.

Our profitability is significantly influenced by our ability to effectively manage our contact center capacity utilization. The majority of our business involves technical support and customer care services initiated by our clients’ customers, and as a result, our capacity utilization varies and demands on our capacity are, to some degree, beyond our control. In order to create the additional capacity necessary to accommodate new or expanded outsourcing projects, we may need to open new contact centers. The opening or expansion of a contact center may result, at least in the short term, in idle capacity until we fully implement the new or expanded program. Additionally, the occasional need to open customer contact centers fully, or primarily, dedicated to a single client, instead of spreading the work among existing facilities with idle capacity, negatively affects capacity utilization. We periodically assess the expected long-term capacity utilization of our contact centers. As a result, we may, if deemed necessary, consolidate, close or partially close under-performing contact centers to maintain or improve targeted utilization and margins. There can be no guarantee that we will be able to achieve or maintain optimal utilization of our contact center capacity.

As part of our effort to consolidate our facilities, we may seek to sell or sublease a portion of our surplus contact center space, if any, and recover certain costs associated with it. Failure to sell or sublease such surplus space will negatively impact results of operations.

Increases in the cost of telephone and data services or significant interruptions in such services could adversely affect our business.

Our business is significantly dependent on telephone and data service provided by various local and long distance telephone companies. Accordingly, any disruption of these services could adversely affect our business. We have taken steps to mitigate our exposure to service disruptions by investing in redundant circuits, although there is no assurance that the redundant circuits would not also suffer disruption. Any inability to obtain telephone or data services at favorable rates could negatively affect our business results. Where possible, we have entered into long-term contracts with various providers to mitigate short term rate increases and fluctuations. There is no obligation, however, for the vendors to renew their contracts with us, or to offer the same or lower rates in the future, and such contracts are subject to termination or modification for various reasons outside of our control. A significant increase in the cost of telephone services that is not recoverable through an increase in the price of our services could adversely affect our business.

Our profitability may be adversely affected if we are unable to maintain and find new locations for customer contact centers in countries with stable wage rates.

Our business is labor-intensive and therefore wages, employee benefits and employment taxes constitute the largest component of our operating expenses. As a result, expansion of our business is dependent upon our ability to find cost-effective locations in which to operate, both domestically and internationally. Some of our customer contact management centers are located in countries that have experienced inflation and rising standards of living, which requires us to increase employee wages. In addition, collective bargaining is being utilized in an increasing number of countries in which we currently, or may in the future, desire to operate. Collective bargaining may result in material wage and benefit increases. If wage rates and benefits increase significantly in a country where we maintain customer contact management centers, we may not be able to pass those increased labor costs on to our clients, requiring us to search for other cost effective delivery locations. There is no assurance that we will be able

 

14


Table of Contents

to find such cost-effective locations, and even if we do, the costs of closing delivery locations and opening new customer contact management centers can adversely affect our financial results.

Risks Related to Our International Operations

Our international operations and expansion involve various risks.

We intend to continue to pursue growth opportunities in markets outside the United States. At December 31, 2011, our international operations were conducted from 34 customer contact management centers located in Sweden, the Netherlands, Finland, Germany, Egypt, South Africa, Scotland, Ireland, Denmark, Norway, Hungary, Romania, Slovakia, The Philippines, The Peoples Republic of China, India and Australia. Revenues from these international operations for the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010, and 2009, were 43%, 42%, and 53% of consolidated revenues, respectively. We also conduct business from 17 customer contact management centers located in Canada, Costa Rica, El Salvador, Mexico and Brazil. International operations are subject to certain risks common to international activities, such as changes in foreign governmental regulations, tariffs and taxes, import/export license requirements, the imposition of trade barriers, difficulties in staffing and managing international operations, political uncertainties, longer payment cycles, possible greater difficulties in accounts receivable collection, economic instability as well as political and country-specific risks.

Additionally, we have been granted tax holidays in The Philippines, Costa Rica, El Salvador and India which expire at varying dates from 2012 through 2023. In some cases, the tax holidays expire without possibility of renewal. In other cases, we expect to renew these tax holidays, but there are no assurances from the respective foreign governments that they will renew them. This could potentially result in adverse tax consequences. Any one or more of these factors could have an adverse effect on our international operations and, consequently, on our business, financial condition and results of operations.

As of December 31, 2011, we had cash balances of approximately $163.9 million held in international operations, most of which would be subject to additional taxes if repatriated to the United States.

The U.S. Department of the Treasury released the “General Explanations of the Administration’s Fiscal Year 2013 Revenue Proposals” in February 2012. These proposals represent a significant shift in international tax policy, which may materially impact U.S. taxation of international earnings. We continue to monitor these proposals and are currently evaluating their potential impact on our financial condition, results of operations, and cash flows. Determination of any unrecognized deferred tax liability for temporary differences related to investments in foreign subsidiaries that are essentially permanent in nature is not practicable.

We conduct business in various foreign currencies and are therefore exposed to market risk from changes in foreign currency exchange rates and interest rates, which could impact our results of operations and financial condition. We are also subject to certain exposures arising from the translation and consolidation of the financial results of our foreign subsidiaries. We enter into foreign currency forward and option contracts to hedge against the effect of our foreign currency exchange exposure. However, there can be no assurance that we will take any actions to mitigate such exposure in the future, and if taken, that such actions will be successful or that future changes in currency exchange rates will not have a material adverse impact on our future operating results. A significant change in the value of the U.S. Dollar against the currency of one or more countries where we operate may have a material adverse effect on our financial condition and results of operations. Additionally, our hedging exposure to counterparty credit risks is not secured by any collateral. Although each of the counterparty financial institutions with which we place hedging contracts are investment grade rated by the national rating agencies as of the time of the placement, we can provide no assurances as to the financial stability of any of our counterparties. If a counterparty to one or more of our hedge transactions were to become insolvent, we would be an unsecured creditor and our exposure at the time would depend on foreign exchange rate movements relative to the contracted foreign exchange rate and whether any gains result that are not realized due to a counterparty default.

The fundamental shift in our industry toward global service delivery markets presents various risks to our business.

 

Clients continue to require blended delivery models using a combination of onshore and offshore support. Our offshore delivery locations include The Philippines, The Peoples Republic of China, India, Costa Rica, El Salvador Mexico and Brazil, and while we have operated in global delivery markets since 1996, there can be no assurance that we will be able to successfully conduct and expand such operations, and a failure to do so could have a material

 

15


Table of Contents

adverse effect on our business, financial condition, and results of operations. The success of our offshore operations will be subject to numerous contingencies, some of which are beyond our control, including general and regional economic conditions, prices for our services, competition, changes in regulation and other risks. In addition, as with all of our operations outside of the United States, we are subject to various additional political, economic and market uncertainties (see “Our international operations and expansion involve various risks”). Additionally, a change in the political environment in the United States or the adoption and enforcement of legislation and regulations curbing the use of offshore customer contact management solutions and services could have a material adverse effect on our business, financial condition and results of operations.

Our global operations expose us to numerous legal and regulatory requirements.

We provide services to our clients’ customers in 23 countries around the world, excluding Spain as a result of the planned sale of those operations. Accordingly, we are subject to numerous legal regimes on matters such as taxation, government sanctions, content requirements, licensing, tariffs, government affairs, data privacy and immigration as well as internal and disclosure control obligations. In the U.S., as well as several of the other countries in which we operate, some of our services must comply with various laws and regulations regarding the method and timing of placing outbound telephone calls. Violations of these various laws and regulations could result in liability for monetary damages, fines and/or criminal prosecution and unfavorable publicity. Changes in U.S. federal, state and international laws and regulations, specifically those relating to the outsourcing of jobs to foreign countries as well as recently enacted statutory and regulatory requirements related to derivative transactions, may adversely affect our ability to perform our services at our overseas facilities or could result in additional taxes on such services, or impact our flexibility to execute strategic hedges, thereby threatening or limiting our ability or the financial benefit to continue to serve certain markets at offshore locations, or the risks associated therewith.

Risks Related to Our Employees

Our operations are substantially dependent on our senior management.

Our success is largely dependent upon the efforts, direction and guidance of our senior management. Our growth and success also depend in part on our ability to attract and retain skilled employees and managers and on the ability of our executive officers and key employees to manage our operations successfully. We have entered into employment and non-competition agreements with our executive officers. The loss of any of our senior management or key personnel, or the inability to attract, retain or replace key management personnel in the future, could have a material adverse effect on our business, financial condition and results of operations.

Our inability to attract and retain experienced personnel may adversely impact our business.

Our business is labor intensive and places significant importance on our ability to recruit, train, and retain qualified technical and consultative professional personnel. We generally experience high turnover of our personnel and are continuously required to recruit and train replacement personnel as a result of a changing and expanding work force. Additionally, demand for qualified technical professionals conversant in multiple languages, including English, and/or certain technologies may exceed supply, as new and additional skills are required to keep pace with evolving computer technology. Our ability to locate and train employees is critical to achieving our growth objective. Our inability to attract and retain qualified personnel or an increase in wages or other costs of attracting, training, or retaining qualified personnel could have a material adverse effect on our business, financial condition and results of operations.

Health epidemics could disrupt our business and adversely affect our financial results.

Our customer contact centers typically seat hundreds of employees in one location. Accordingly, an outbreak of a contagious infection in one or more of the markets in which we do business may result in significant worker absenteeism, lower asset utilization rates, voluntary or mandatory closure of our offices and delivery centers, travel restrictions on our employees, and other disruptions to our business. Any prolonged or widespread health epidemic could severely disrupt our business operations and have a material adverse effect on our business, financial condition and results of operations.

 

16


Table of Contents

Risks Related to Our Growth Strategy

Our strategy of growing through selective acquisitions and mergers involves potential risks.

We evaluate opportunities to expand the scope of our services through acquisitions and mergers. We may be unable to identify companies that complement our strategies, and even if we identify a company that complements our strategies, we may be unable to acquire or merge with the company. In addition, a decrease in the price of our common stock could hinder our growth strategy by limiting growth through acquisitions funded with SYKES’ stock.

Our acquisition strategy involves other potential risks. These risks include:

 

   

the inability to obtain the capital required to finance potential acquisitions on satisfactory terms;

   

the diversion of our attention to the integration of the businesses to be acquired;

   

the risk that the acquired businesses will fail to maintain the quality of services that we have historically provided;

   

the need to implement financial and other systems and add management resources;

   

the risk that key employees of the acquired business will leave after the acquisition;

   

potential liabilities of the acquired business;

   

unforeseen difficulties in the acquired operations;

   

adverse short-term effects on our operating results;

   

lack of success in assimilating or integrating the operations of acquired businesses within our business;

   

the dilutive effect of the issuance of additional equity securities;

   

the impairment of goodwill and other intangible assets involved in any acquisitions;

   

the businesses we acquire not proving profitable; and

   

potentially incurring additional indebtedness.

We may not succeed in our continued efforts to fully integrate the operations of ICT into our own, which may adversely affect the value of our common stock.

It is possible that the integration of the operations of ICT into our own could result in the disruption of ongoing businesses or identify inconsistencies in standards, controls, procedures and policies that adversely affect our ability to maintain relationships with customers, suppliers, distributors, creditors and lessors, or to achieve the full level of anticipated benefits of the acquisition.

Specifically, issues addressed in completing the integration of the operations of ICT into our own operations in order to realize the anticipated benefits of the acquisition include, among other things:

 

   

integrating our information technology systems with those of ICT;

   

conforming standards, controls, procedures and policies, business cultures and compensation structures between the companies;

   

consolidating corporate and administrative infrastructures;

   

retaining existing customers and attracting new customers;

   

identifying and eliminating redundant and underperforming operations and assets;

   

coordinating geographically dispersed organizations;

   

managing tax costs or inefficiencies associated with integrating the operations of the combined company; and

   

making any necessary modifications to operating control standards to comply with the Sarbanes-Oxley Act of 2002 and the rules and regulations promulgated thereunder.

Integration efforts between the two companies at times may divert management attention and resources. An inability to realize the full extent of, or any of, the anticipated benefits of the acquisition, as well as any delays encountered in the integration process, could have an adverse effect on our business and results of operations, which may affect the value of the shares of our common stock.

In addition, the actual integration may result in additional and unforeseen expenses, and the full amount of anticipated benefits of the integration plan may not be realized. If we are not able to adequately address these challenges, we may be unable to fully integrate ICT’s operations into our own, or to realize the full amount of anticipated benefits of the integration of the two companies.

 

17


Table of Contents

We may incur significant cash and non-cash costs in connection with the continued rationalization of assets resulting from acquisitions.

We may incur a number of non-recurring cash and non-cash costs associated with the continued rationalization of assets resulting from acquisitions relating to the closing of facilities and disposition of assets.

We have substantial goodwill and if it becomes impaired, then our profits would be significantly reduced or eliminated and shareholders’ equity would be reduced.

We recorded goodwill as a result of the ICT acquisition. On at least an annual basis, we assess whether there has been an impairment in the value of goodwill. If the carrying value of goodwill exceeds its estimated fair value, impairment is deemed to have occurred and the carrying value of goodwill is written down to fair value. This would result in a charge to our operating earnings.

Risks Related to Our Common Stock

Our organizational documents contain provisions that could impede a change in control.

Our Board of Directors is divided into three classes serving staggered three-year terms. The staggered Board of Directors and the anti-takeover effects of certain provisions contained in the Florida Business Corporation Act and in our Articles of Incorporation and Bylaws, including the ability of the Board of Directors to issue shares of preferred stock and to fix the rights and preferences of those shares without shareholder approval, may have the effect of delaying, deferring or preventing an unsolicited change in control. This may adversely affect the market price of our common stock or the ability of shareholders to participate in a transaction in which they might otherwise receive a premium for their shares.

The volatility of our stock price may result in loss of investment.

The trading price of our common stock has been and may continue to be subject to wide fluctuations over short and long periods of time. We believe that market prices of outsourced customer contact management services stocks in general have experienced volatility, which could affect the market price of our common stock regardless of our financial results or performance. We further believe that various factors such as general economic conditions, changes or volatility in the financial markets, changing market conditions in the outsourced customer contact management services industry, quarterly variations in our financial results, the announcement of acquisitions, strategic partnerships, or new product offerings, and changes in financial estimates and recommendations by securities analysts could cause the market price of our common stock to fluctuate substantially in the future.

Failure to adhere to laws, rules and regulations applicable to public companies operating in the U.S. may have an adverse effect on our stock price.

Because we are a publicly traded company, we are subject to certain evolving and expensive federal, state and other rules and regulations relating to, among other things, assessment and maintenance of internal controls and corporate governance. Section 404 of the Sarbanes-Oxley Act of 2002, together with rules and regulations issued by the Securities and Exchange Commission (“SEC”) require us to furnish, on an annual basis, a report by our management (included elsewhere in this Annual Report on Form 10-K) regarding the effectiveness of our internal control over financial reporting. The report includes, among other things, an assessment of the effectiveness of our internal controls over financial reporting as of the end of our fiscal year and a statement as to whether or not our internal controls over financial reporting are effective. We must include a disclosure of any material weaknesses in our internal control over financial reporting identified by management during the annual assessment. We have in the past discovered, and may potentially in the future discover, areas of internal control over financial reporting which may require improvement. If at any time we are unable to assert that our internal controls over financial reporting are effective, or if our auditors are unable to express an opinion on the effectiveness of our internal controls, our investors could lose confidence in the accuracy and/or completeness of our financial reports, which could have an adverse effect on our stock price.

Additionally, the Dodd-Frank Wall Street Reform and Consumer Protection Act (the “Dodd-Frank Act”) enacted in 2010 subjects us to significant additional executive compensation and corporate governance requirements and disclosures, some of which have yet to be implemented by the SEC. Compliance with their requirements may be costly and adversely affect our business. The Dodd-Frank Act also anticipates the enactment of regulations that may affect the ability of financial institutions to offer credit and hedging instruments without significant additional

 

18


Table of Contents

capital or other costs to them. This may make it more difficult for us to have access to foreign exchange hedging transactions on favorable terms, which may limit the predictability of cash flows from operations and result in increased operating expenses.

Item 1B. Unresolved Staff Comments

There are no material unresolved written comments that were received from the SEC staff 180 days or more before the year ended December 31, 2011 relating to our periodic or current reports filed under the Securities Exchange Act of 1934.

 

19


Table of Contents

Item 2. Properties

Our principal executive offices are located in Tampa, Florida. This facility currently serves as the headquarters for senior management and the financial, information technology and administrative departments. We believe our existing facilities are adequate to meet current requirements, and that suitable additional or substitute space will be available as needed to accommodate any physical expansion or any space required due to expiring leases not renewed. We operate from time to time in temporary facilities to accommodate growth before new customer contact management centers are available. During 2011, our customer contact management centers, taken as a whole, were utilized at average capacities of approximately 74% and were capable of supporting a higher level of market demand. The following table sets forth additional information concerning our facilities:

 

Properties    General Usage            Square Feet   

Lease Expiration/  

Company Owned  

 

AMERICAS LOCATIONS         

Tampa, Florida

  

Corporate headquarters

   67,645    

June 2016

Nogales, Arizona

  

Customer contact management center

   44,402    

January 2015

Fort Smith, Arkansas

  

Customer contact management center

   40,622    

April 2021

Malvern, Arkansas

  

Customer contact management center

   32,287    

May 2019

Morrilton, Arkansas

  

Customer contact management center

   23,850    

July 2016

Sterling, Colorado

  

Customer contact management center

   34,000    

Company owned

Lakeland, Florida

  

Customer contact management center

   50,000    

July 2014

Bardstown, Kentucky

  

Customer contact management center

   35,813    

September 2019

Louisville, Kentucky

  

Customer contact management center

   36,860    

May 2012

Morganfield, Kentucky (1)

  

Customer contact management center

   42,000    

Company owned

Perry County, Kentucky

  

Customer contact management center

   42,000    

Company owned

Wilton, Maine

  

Customer contact management center

   30,000    

April 2012

Amherst, New York

  

Customer contact management center

   26,296    

May 2013

Bismarck, North Dakota

  

Customer contact management center

   42,000    

Company owned

Ponca City, Oklahoma

  

Customer contact management center

   42,000    

Company owned

Milton-Freewater, Oregon

  

Customer contact management center

   42,000    

Company owned

Allentown, Pennsylvania

  

Customer contact management center

   21,115    

September 2013

Bloomburg, Pennsylvania

  

Customer contact management center

   21,800    

July 2014

Langhorn, Pennsylvania

  

Customer contact management center

   21,641    

March 2017

Langhorn, Pennsylvania

  

Customer contact management center

   14,060    

March 2017

Langhorn, Pennsylvania

  

Customer contact management center

   1,396      

June 2012

Lockhaven, Pennsylvania

  

Customer contact management center

   23,610    

June 2012

Newtown, Pennsylvania (2)

  

Headquarters

   102,000   

February 2017

Greenwood, South Carolina

  

Customer contact management center

   25,000    

December 2012

Greenwood, South Carolina

  

Customer contact management center

   15,000    

December 2018

Kingstree, South Carolina

  

Customer contact management center

   35,000    

March 2028

Sumter, South Carolina

  

Customer contact management center

   25,000    

April 2014

Sumter, South Carolina

  

Customer contact management center

   17,141    

September 2013

Sumter, South Carolina

  

Customer contact management center

   2,141      

March 2012

Buchanan County, Virginia

  

Customer contact management center

   42,700    

Company owned

Wise, Virginia

  

Customer contact management center

   42,000    

Company owned

Spokane, Washington

  

Customer contact management center

   50,000    

July 2013

Maitland, Australia

  

Customer contact management center

   10,613    

September 2012

 

(1) 

Closed in June, 2011.

(2)

Customer contact management center closed in December, 2011. Excess capacity subleased.

 

20


Table of Contents
Properties    General Usage            Square Feet   

Lease Expiration/  

Company Owned  

 

AMERICAS LOCATIONS (continued)         
Rhodes (Sydney), Australia   

Customer contact management center

   9,363      

September 2012

Robina, Australia   

Customer contact management center

   9,364      

February 2013

Curitiba, Brazil   

Customer contact management center

   25,658    

July 2012

London, Ontario, Canada   

Headquarters

   50,000    

Company owned

Moncton, New Brunswick, Canada (3)   

Customer contact management center

   12,714    

December 2016

North Bay, Ontario, Canada (3)   

Customer contact management center

   5,371      

May 2013

Sudbury, Ontario, Canada (3)   

Customer contact management center

   4,150      

December 2015

Toronto, Ontario, Canada (3)   

Customer contact management center

   14,600    

June 2012

Ottawa, Ontario, Canada   

Customer contact management center

   4,170      

June 2021

Cornerbrook, New Foundland Labrador, Canada   

Customer contact management center

   15,151    

June 2016

Lindsay, Ontario, Canada   

Customer contact management center

   15,338    

February 2014

Miramichi, New Brunswick, Canada   

Customer contact management center

   30,000    

May 2012

Peterborough, Ontario, Canada   

Customer contact management center

   17,409    

January 2016

Riverview, New Brunswick, Canada   

Customer contact management center

   49,017    

June 2014

Sherebrook, Quebec, Canada   

Customer contact management center

   26,764    

January 2017

St. John, New Brunswick, Canada   

Customer contact management center

   25,000    

February 2015

St. John, New Foundland Labrador, Canada   

Customer contact management center

   49,000    

December 2015

Sydney, Nova Scotia, Canada   

Customer contact management center

   27,200    

February 2016

Hatillo, San Jose, Costa Rica   

Customer contact management center

   49,138    

July 2021

LaAurora, Heredia, Costa Rica (two)   

Customer contact management centers

   131,912   

September 2023

Moravia, San Jose, Costa Rica   

Customer contact management center

   38,481    

July 2027

Barranquilla, Colombia   

Customer contact management center

   23,121    

May 2032

San Salvador, El Salvador   

Customer contact management center

   119,514   

November 2024

Hyderabad, India   

Customer contact management center

   16,000    

June 2014

Mexico City, Mexico   

Customer contact management center

   59,503    

November 2014

Guangzhou, The Peoples Republic of China   

Customer contact management center

   12,971    

March 2012

Shanghai, The Peoples Republic of China   

Customer contact management center

   70,474    

February 2016

Cebu City, The Philippines   

Customer contact management center

   149,404   

December 2026

Makati City, The Philippines   

Customer contact management center

   68,610    

March 2023

Makati City, The Philippines   

Customer contact management center

   68,268    

September 2013

Mandaluyong, The Philippines   

Customer contact management center

   138,716   

April 2022

Mandaluyong, The Philippines   

Customer contact management center

   82,150    

December 2021

Marikina City, The Philippines   

Customer contact management center

   74,525    

March 2012

Marikina City, The Philippines   

Customer contact management center

   87,275    

June 2012

Pasig City, The Philippines   

Customer contact management center

   117,597   

November 2023

Pasig City, The Philippines   

Customer contact management center

   73,873    

September 2012

Quezon City, The Philippines   

Customer contact management center

   84,250    

September 2024

Chesterfield, Missouri (4)   

Office

   3,618      

January 2016

Calgary, Alberta, Canada   

Office

   7,782      

July 2012

Bangalore, India   

Office

   1,500      

January 2014

Makati City, The Philippines   

Office

   1,497      

May 2013

Pasig City, The Philippines   

Office

   1,917      

August 2012

 

(3)

Considered part of the Toronto, Ontario, Canada customer contact management center.

(4)

Enterprise support services location.

 

21


Table of Contents
Properties    General Usage            Square Feet   

Lease Expiration/  

Company Owned  

 

EMEA LOCATIONS         

Odense, Denmark

  

Customer contact management center

   13,606    

January 2016

Cairo, Egypt

  

Customer contact management center

   27,936    

January 2013

Turku, Finland

  

Customer contact management center

   12,508    

February 2013

Berlin, Germany

  

Customer contact management center

   60,278    

February 2020

Bochum, Germany

  

Customer contact management center

   41,334    

December 2013

Pasewalk, Germany

  

Customer contact management center

   46,070    

February 2013

Wilhelmshaven, Germany

  

Customer contact management center

   46,000    

November 2012

Wilhelmshaven, Germany

  

Customer contact management center

   14,300    

August 2012

Budapest, Hungary

  

Customer contact management center

   23,961    

March 2013

Dublin, Ireland (5)

  

Customer contact management center

   9,845      

March 2014

Shannon, Ireland

  

Customer contact management center

   66,000    

January 2013

Bergen, Norway

  

Customer contact management center

   8,654      

August 2015

Bodo, Norway

  

Customer contact management center

   4,004      

January 2017

Cluj, Romania

  

Customer contact management center

   32,055    

April 2030

Edinburgh, Scotland

  

Customer contact management center/
Office/Headquarters

   35,870    

September 2019

Kosice, Slovakia

  

Customer contact management center

   40,023    

December 2024

Johannesburg, South Africa

  

Customer contact management center

   21,692    

July 2012

La Coruña, Spain (6)

  

Customer contact management center

   10,314    

December 2012

Lugo, Spain (6)

  

Customer contact management center

   21,442    

June 2012

Ponferrada, Spain (6)

  

Customer contact management center

   16,146    

December 2028

Ed, Sweden

  

Customer contact management center

   44,061    

September 2019

Sveg, Sweden

  

Customer contact management center

   34,975    

June 2013

Amsterdam, The Netherlands

  

Customer contact management center

   33,089    

September 2012

Galashiels, Scotland

  

Fulfillment center

   126,700   

Company owned

Rosersberg, Sweden

  

Fulfillment center and Sales office

   43,056    

February 2013

Frankfurt, Germany

  

Sales office

   1,701      

September 2012

Madrid, Spain (6)

  

Office

   127         

February 2013

 

(5) 

Closed in December, 2010.

(6) 

Classified as discontinued operations in December, 2011.

 

22


Table of Contents

Item 3. Legal Proceedings

From time to time, we are involved in legal actions arising in the ordinary course of business. With respect to these matters, we believe that we have adequate legal defenses and/or when possible and appropriate, have provided adequate accruals related to those matters such that the ultimate outcome will not have a material adverse effect on our future financial position or results of operations.

We have previously disclosed pending matters involving regulatory sanctions assessed against our Spanish subsidiary, which is classified as discontinued operations. All of these matters relate to the alleged inappropriate acquisition of personal information in connection with two outbound client contracts. Based upon the opinion of legal counsel regarding the likely outcome of these matters, we accrued a $1.3 million liability under ASC 450 “Contingencies” because management believed that a loss was probable and the amount of the loss could be reasonably estimated. Due to the favorable rulings by the Spanish Supreme Court, we reversed $0.4 million and $0.5 million of the accrued liability during the years ended December 31, 2011 and 2010, respectively. The remaining accrued liability of $0.4 million is included in “Liabilities held for sale – discontinued operations” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet at December 31, 2011. As of December 31, 2010, the accrued liability of $0.8 million was included in “Other accrued expenses and current liabilities” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet. The final claim was finally decided against us on procedural grounds, but subsequent to year end, the assessed fine associated with that claim was settled at no cost to us.

In connection with the appeal of one of these claims, we issued a bank guarantee, which is included as restricted cash of $0.4 million in “Deferred charges and other assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets as of December 31, 2010. Due to the favorable ruling by the Spanish Supreme Court mentioned above, we released the bank guarantee during the three months ended December 31, 2011.

Item 4. Mine Safety Disclosures

Not Applicable.

 

23


Table of Contents

PART II

Item 5. Market for the Registrant’s Common Equity, Related Shareholder Matters and Issuer Purchases of Securities

Our common stock is quoted on the NASDAQ Global Select Market under the symbol SYKE. The following table sets forth, for the periods indicated, certain information as to the high and low sale prices per share of our common stock as quoted on the NASDAQ Global Select Market.

 

     High      Low  

Year Ended December 31, 2011:

     

Fourth Quarter

     $     18.96         $     13.16   

Third Quarter

     22.69         10.56   

Second Quarter

     22.88         18.74   

First Quarter

     21.11         17.82   

Year Ended December 31, 2010:

     

Fourth Quarter

     $ 21.68         $ 13.49   

Third Quarter

     16.70         10.85   

Second Quarter

     23.46         14.21   

First Quarter

     26.26         22.59   

Holders of our common stock are entitled to receive dividends out of the funds legally available when and if declared by the Board of Directors. We have not declared or paid any cash dividends on our common stock in the past and do not anticipate paying any cash dividends in the foreseeable future.

As of February 24, 2012, there were 985 holders of record of the common stock. We estimate there were approximately 5,000 beneficial owners of our common stock.

Below is a summary of stock repurchases for the quarter ended December 31, 2011 (in thousands, except average price per share).

 

 Period    Total
Number of
Shares
Purchased(1)
     Average
Price
Paid Per
Share
     Total Number of
Shares Purchased
as Part of Publicly
Announced Plans
or Programs
     Maximum Number
of Shares That May
Yet Be Purchased
Under Plans or
Programs
 

 

 

 October 1, 2011 - October 31, 2011

     -             -             -             3,000    

 November 1, 2011 - November 30, 2011

     275           14.63           275           2,725    

 December 1, 2011 - December 31, 2011

     219           14.95           219           2,506    
  

 

 

       

 

 

    

 

 

 

 Total

     494              494           2,506    
  

 

 

       

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

  (1)

All shares purchased as part of the repurchase plan publicly announced on August 8, 2011. Total number of shares approved for repurchase under the 2011 Repurchase Plan was 5.0 million with no expiration date. All of the available shares available under the repurchase plan publicly announced on August 5, 2002 have been repurchased.

 

24


Table of Contents

Five-Year Stock Performance Graph

The following graph presents a comparison of the cumulative shareholder return on the common stock with the cumulative total return on the NASDAQ Computer and Data Processing Services Index, the NASDAQ Telecommunications Index, the Russell 2000 Index, the S&P Small Cap 600 and the SYKES Peer Group (as defined below). The SYKES Peer Group is comprised of publicly traded companies that derive a substantial portion of their revenues from call center, customer care business, have similar business models to SYKES, and are those most commonly compared to SYKES by industry analysts following SYKES. This graph assumes that $100 was invested on December 31, 2006 in SYKES common stock, the NASDAQ Computer and Data Processing Services Index, the NASDAQ Telecommunications Index, the Russell 2000 Index, the S&P Small Cap 600 and SYKES Peer Group, including reinvestment of dividends.

Comparison of Five-Year Cumulative Total Return

 

LOGO

 

    SYKES Peer Group    Ticker Symbol            

 

    Convergys Corp.

   CVG    

    StarTek, Inc.

   SRT

    TeleTech Holdings, Inc.

   TTEC

There was a change to the SYKES Peer Group with respect to APAC Customer Service, Inc. (“APAC”), which was acquired by One Equity Partners, the private investment firm owned by JP Morgan Chase & Co. in October 2011. With the acquisition of APAC, the Peer Group excludes the share price performance of APAC for the past 5 years as APAC shares no longer trade on NASDAQ.

 

25


Table of Contents

There can be no assurance that SYKES’ stock performance will continue into the future with the same or similar trends depicted in the graph above. SYKES does not make or endorse any predictions as to the future stock performance.

The information contained in the Stock Performance Graph section shall not be deemed to be “soliciting material” or “filed” or incorporated by reference in future filings with the SEC, or subject to the liabilities of Section 18 of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934, except to the extent that we specifically incorporate it by reference into a document filed under the Securities Exchange Act of 1934.

Item 6. Selected Financial Data

Selected Financial Data

The following selected financial data has been derived from our Consolidated Financial Statements.

During 2011, we committed to a plan to sell our operations in Spain. Also, we sold our Argentine operations during 2010. Accordingly, we have reclassified the selected financial data for all periods presented to reflect these results as discontinued operations in accordance with Accounting Standards Codification 205-20 “Discontinued Operations”.

The information below should be read in conjunction with “Management’s Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations,” and the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements and related notes thereto.

 

26


Table of Contents

 

    Years Ended December 31,  
(in thousands, except per share data)   2011     2010     2009     2008     2007  

Income Statement Data: (1)

         

Revenues

    $         1,169,267         $         1,121,911         $         769,353         $         749,004         $         662,033    

Income from continuing operations (2,4,6,7,8,9)

    65,535         37,981         71,172         64,942         55,632    

Income from continuing operations, net of taxes (2,4,6,7,8,9)

    52,314         26,115         44,667         60,490         44,461    

(Loss) from discontinued operations, net of taxes (3) 

    (4,532)        (12,893)        (1,456)        71         (4,602)   

Gain (loss) on sale of discontinued operations, net of taxes (5)

    559         (23,495)        -           -           -      

Net income (loss)

    48,341         (10,273)        43,211         60,561         39,859    

Net Income (Loss) Per Common Share: (1)

         

Basic:

         

Continuing operations (2,4,6,7,8,9)

    $ 1.15         $ 0.57         $ 1.10         $ 1.49         $ 1.10    

Discontinued operations (3,5)

    (0.09)        (0.79)        (0.04)        0.00         (0.11)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Net income (loss) per common share

    $ 1.06         $ (0.22)        $ 1.06         $ 1.49         $ 0.99    
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Diluted:

         

Continuing operations (2,4,6,7,8,9)

    $ 1.15         $ 0.57         $ 1.09         $ 1.48         $ 1.09    

Discontinued operations (3,5)

    (0.09)        (0.79)        (0.04)        0.00         (0.11)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Net income (loss) per common share

    $ 1.06         $ (0.22)        $ 1.05         $ 1.48         $ 0.98    
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Weighted Average Shares: (1)

         

Basic

    45,506         46,030         40,707         40,618         40,387    

Diluted

    45,607         46,133         41,026         40,961         40,699    

Balance Sheet Data: (1,10)

         

Total assets

    $ 769,130         $ 794,600         $ 672,471         $ 529,542         $ 505,475    

Shareholders’ equity

    573,566         583,195         450,674         384,030         365,321    

 

  (1)

The amounts for 2011 and 2010 include the ICT acquisition completed on February 2, 2010.

  (2)

The amounts for 2011 include $11.8 million in ICT acquisition-related costs, a $3.7 million net gain on the sale of the land and building in Minot, North Dakota, a $1.7 million impairment of long-lived assets and a $0.5 million net gain on insurance settlement.

  (3)

The amounts for all periods presented include the operations in Spain, which were classified as held for sale as of December 31, 2011, and the Argentine operations, which were sold in 2010.

  (4)

The amounts for 2011 includes $5.8 million related to the Fourth Quarter 2011 Exit Plan.

  (5)

The amounts for 2011 and 2010 include the gain (loss) on sale of the Argentine operations.

  (6)

The amounts for 2010 include $46.3 million in ICT acquisition-related costs, a $3.3 million impairment of long-lived assets, a $2.0 million net gain on insurance settlement and a $0.4 million impairment of goodwill and intangibles.

  (7)

The amounts for 2009 include $3.3 million in ICT acquisition-related costs and a $1.9 million impairment of goodwill and intangibles.

  (8)

The amounts for 2009 include a $14.7 million charge to provision for income taxes related to our change of intent in the fourth quarter of 2009 regarding the permanent reinvestment of foreign subsidiaries’ accumulated and undistributed earnings and a $2.1 million impairment loss on our investment in SHPS.

  (9)

The amounts for 2007 include a $1.3 million provision for regulatory penalties related to privacy claims associated with the alleged inappropriate acquisition of personal bank account information in our Spanish subsidiary. The amounts for 2011 and 2010 each include a $0.4 million recovery of these regulatory penalties.

  (10)

SYKES has not declared cash dividends per common share for any of the five years presented.

 

27


Table of Contents

Item 7. Management’s Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations

This discussion should be read in conjunction with the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements and the notes thereto that appear elsewhere in this Annual Report on Form 10-K. The following discussion and analysis compares the year ended December 31, 2011 (“2011”) to the year ended December 31, 2010 (“2010”), and 2010 to the year ended December 31, 2009 (“2009”).

The following discussion and analysis and other sections of this document contain forward-looking statements that involve risks and uncertainties. Words such as “may,” “expects,” “projects,” “anticipates,” “intends,” “plans,” “believes,” “seeks,” “estimates,” variations of such words, and similar expressions are intended to identify such forward-looking statements. Similarly, statements that describe our future plans, objectives, or goals also are forward-looking statements. Future events and actual results could differ materially from the results reflected in these forward-looking statements, as a result of certain of the factors set forth below and elsewhere in this analysis and in this Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 2011 in Item 1.A., “Risk Factors.”

Overview

We provide an array of sophisticated customer contact management solutions to a wide range of clients including Fortune 1000 companies, medium-sized businesses, and public institutions around the world, primarily in the communications, financial services, technology/consumer, transportation and leisure, healthcare and other industries. We serve our clients through two geographic operating regions: the Americas (United States, Canada, Latin America, Australia and the Asia Pacific Rim) and EMEA (Europe, the Middle East and Africa). Our Americas and EMEA groups primarily provide customer contact management services (with an emphasis on inbound technical support and customer service), which include customer assistance, healthcare and roadside assistance, technical support and product sales to our clients’ customers. These services, which represented 98% of consolidated revenues in 2011, are delivered through multiple communication channels encompassing phone, e-mail, Internet, text messaging and chat. We also provide various enterprise support services in the United States (“U.S.”) that include services for our clients’ internal support operations, from technical staffing services to outsourced corporate help desk services. In Europe, we also provide fulfillment services including multilingual sales order processing via the Internet and phone, payment processing, inventory control, product delivery, and product returns handling. Our complete service offering helps our clients acquire, retain and increase the lifetime value of their customer relationships. We have developed an extensive global reach with customer contact management centers throughout the United States, Canada, Latin America, Australia, the Asia Pacific Rim, Europe and Africa.

Revenues from these services is recognized as the services are performed, which is based on either a per minute, per hour, per call or per transaction basis, under a fully executed contractual agreement, and we record reductions to revenues for contractual penalties and holdbacks for a failure to meet specified minimum service levels and other performance based contingencies. Revenue recognition is limited to the amount that is not contingent upon delivery of any future product or service or meeting other specified performance conditions. Product sales, accounted for within our fulfillment services, are recognized upon shipment to the customer and satisfaction of all obligations.

Direct salaries and related costs include direct personnel compensation, severance, statutory and other benefits associated with such personnel and other direct costs associated with providing services to customers. General and administrative costs include administrative, sales and marketing, occupancy, depreciation and amortization, and other costs.

The net gain (loss) on disposal of property and equipment includes the net gain on sale in 2011 of the land and building located in Minot, North Dakota.

The net gain on insurance settlement in 2011 and 2010 includes the insurance proceeds received for typhoon damage to one of our customer contact management centers in The Philippines.

The impairment of goodwill and intangibles in 2010 is primarily related to customer relationships in the ICT-acquired United Kingdom operations. The impairment of goodwill and intangibles in 2009 is related to the March 2005 acquisition of Kelly, Luthmer & Associates Limited (“KLA”), our Employee Assistance and Occupational Health operations in Calgary, Alberta Canada.

The impairment of long-lived assets, primarily leasehold improvements and equipment, in the Americas and EMEA segments in 2011 and 2010 were related to an ongoing effort to streamline excess capacity related to the ICT acquisition and align it with the needs of the market, optimize capacity utilization and improve overall profitability.

 

28


Table of Contents

Interest income primarily relates to interest earned on cash and cash equivalents and foreign tax refunds. Interest expense primarily includes commitment fees charged on the unused portion of our revolving credit facility and interest on borrowings in 2010 related to the ICT acquisition, as more fully described in this Item 7, under “Liquidity and Capital Resources.”

Impairment (loss) on investment in SHPS represents the estimated fair value adjustment and subsequent liquidation of our noncontrolling interest in SHPS by converting our SHPS common stock into cash for $0.000001 per share.

Other (expense) includes gains and losses on foreign currency derivative instruments not designated as hedges, foreign currency transaction gains and losses and other miscellaneous income (expense).

Our effective tax rate for the periods presented includes the effects of state income taxes, net of federal tax benefit, tax holidays, valuation allowance changes, foreign rate differentials, foreign withholding and other taxes, and permanent differences.

Discontinued Operations

In November 2011, we committed to a plan to sell our operations in Spain. We have reflected the operating results related to the operations in Spain as discontinued operations in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations for all periods presented. The assets and related liabilities of Spain are presented as held for sale in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet as of December 31, 2011. This business was historically reported as part of the EMEA segment.

In December 2010, we sold our Argentine operations pursuant to stock purchase agreements, dated December 16, 2010 and December 29, 2010. We have reflected the operating results related to the Argentine operations as discontinued operations in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations for all periods presented. This business was historically reported as part of the Americas segment.

See “Results of Operations – Discontinued Operations” later in this Item 7 for more information. Unless otherwise noted, discussions below pertain only to our continuing operations.

Acquisition of ICT

On February 2, 2010, we completed the acquisition of ICT Group, Inc. (“ICT”), a Pennsylvania corporation and a leading global provider of outsourced customer management and BPO solutions. We refer to such acquisition herein as the “ICT acquisition.”

As a result of the ICT acquisition on February 2, 2010,

 

   

each outstanding share of ICT’s common stock, par value $0.01 per share, was converted into the right to receive $7.69 in cash, without interest, and 0.3423 of a share of SYKES common stock, par value $0.01 per share;

 

   

each outstanding ICT stock option, whether or not then vested and exercisable, became fully vested and exercisable immediately prior to, and then was canceled at, the effective time of the acquisition, and the holder of such option became entitled to receive an amount in cash, without interest and less any applicable taxes to be withheld, equal to (i) the excess, if any, of (1) $15.38 over (2) the exercise price per share of ICT common stock subject to such ICT stock option, multiplied by (ii) the total number of shares of ICT common stock underlying such ICT stock option, with the aggregate amount of such payment rounded up to the nearest cent. If the exercise price was equal to or greater than $15.38, then the stock option was canceled without any payment to the stock option holder; and

 

   

each outstanding ICT restricted stock unit (“RSU”) became fully vested and then was canceled and the holder of such vested awards became entitled to receive $15.38 in cash, without interest and less any applicable taxes to be withheld, in respect of each share of ICT common stock into which the RSU would otherwise have been convertible.

 

29


Table of Contents

The total aggregate purchase price of the transaction of $277.8 million was comprised of $141.1 million in cash and 5.6 million shares of SYKES common stock valued at $136.7 million. The transaction was funded through borrowings consisting of a $75 million short-term loan from KeyBank National Association (“KeyBank”) in December 2009, due March 31, 2010, and a $75 million term loan from a syndicate of banks due in varying installments through February 1, 2013. Both of these loans were repaid during 2010 and are no longer available for borrowings. See “Liquidity & Capital Resources” later in this Item 7 for further information.

The results of operations of ICT have been reflected in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for the year ended December 31, 2011 and the period from February 2, 2010 to December 31, 2010.

Results of Operations

The following table sets forth, for the periods indicated, the percentage of revenues represented by certain items reflected in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations:

 

                 Years Ended December  31,              
           2011                  2010                  2009        

Percentage of Revenue:

        

Revenues

               100.0%                   100.0%                   100.0%   

Direct salaries and related costs

     65.3             63.8             62.6       

General and administrative

     29.2             32.7             27.8       

Net (gain) loss on disposal of property and equipment

     (0.3)            0.0             -       

Net (gain) on insurance settlement

     -             (0.2)            -       

Impairment of goodwill and intangibles

     -             -             0.2       

Impairment of long-lived assets

     0.1             0.3             -       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Income from continuing operations

     5.7             3.4             9.4       

Interest income

     0.1             0.1             0.3       

Interest (expense)

     (0.1)            (0.4)            -       

Impairment (loss) on investment in SHPS

     -             -             (0.3)      

Other (expense)

     (0.2)            (0.5)            -       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Income from continuing operations before income taxes

     5.5             2.6             9.4       

Income taxes

     1.0             0.2             3.4       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Income from continuing operations, net of taxes

     4.5             2.4             6.0       

(Loss) from discontinued operations, net of taxes

     (0.3)            (3.2)            (0.2)      
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net income (loss)

     4.2%         (0.8)%         5.8%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

30


Table of Contents

The following table sets forth, for the periods indicated, certain data derived from the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations (in thousands):

 

     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Revenues

     $     1,169,267            $     1,121,911            $     769,353      

Direct salaries and related costs

     763,930            715,571            481,823      

General and administrative

     341,586            366,565            214,255      

Net (gain) loss on disposal of property and equipment

     (3,021)           143            195      

Net (gain) on insurance settlement

     (481)           (1,991)           -      

Impairment of goodwill and intangibles

     -            362            1,908      

Impairment of long-lived assets

     1,718            3,280            -      
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Income from continuing operations

     65,535            37,981            71,172      

Interest income

     1,352            1,201            2,287      

Interest (expense)

     (1,132)           (4,963)           (302)     

Impairment (loss) on investment in SHPS

     -            -            (2,089)     

Other (expense)

     (2,099)           (5,907)           (283)     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Income from continuing operations before income taxes

     63,656            28,312            70,785      

Income taxes

     11,342            2,197            26,118      
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Income from continuing operations, net of taxes

     52,314            26,115            44,667      

(Loss) from discontinued operations, net of taxes

     (3,973)           (36,388)           (1,456)     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net income (loss)

     $ 48,341            $ (10,273)           $ 43,211      
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

The following table summarizes our revenues for the periods indicated, by reporting segment (in thousands):

 

            Years Ended December 31,         
  

 

 

 
     2011      2010      2009  

Americas

     $ 963,142         82.4%         $ 934,329         83.3%         $     565,022         73.4%   

EMEA

     206,125         17.6%         187,582         16.7%         204,331         26.6%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Consolidated

     $     1,169,267         100.0%         $     1,121,911         100.0%         $ 769,353         100.0%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

31


Table of Contents

The following table summarizes certain amounts and percentages of revenues for the periods indicated, by reporting segment (in thousands):

 

            Years Ended December 31,         
  

 

 

 
     2011      2010      2009  

Direct salaries and related costs:

                 

Americas

     $     611,783         63.5%         $     580,741         62.2%         $     341,681         60.5%   

EMEA

     152,147         73.8%         134,830         71.9%         140,142         68.6%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Consolidated

     $ 763,930         65.3%         $ 715,571         63.8%         $ 481,823         62.6%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

General and administrative:

                 

Americas

     $ 237,899         24.7%         $ 244,213         26.1%         $ 119,998         21.2%   

EMEA

     57,241         27.8%         57,714         30.8%         50,756         24.8%   

Corporate

     46,446         -         64,638         -         43,501         -   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Consolidated

     $ 341,586         29.2%         $ 366,565         32.7%         $ 214,255         27.8%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net (gain) loss on disposal ofproperty and equipment:

                 

Americas

     $ (3,030)         (0.3)%         $ 78         0.0%         $ 48         0.0%   

EMEA

     9         0.0%         65         0.0%         147         0.1%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Consolidated

     $ (3,021)         (0.3)%         $ 143         0.0%         $ 195         0.0%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net (gain) on insurance settlement:

                 

Americas

     $ (481)         0.0%         $ (1,991)         (0.2)%         $ -         0.0%   

EMEA

     -         0.0%         -         0.0%         -         0.0%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Consolidated

     $ (481)         0.0%         $ (1,991)         (0.2)%         $ -         0.0%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Impairment of goodwill andintangibles:

                 

Americas

     $ -         0.0%         $ -         0.0%         $ 1,908         0.3%   

EMEA

     -         0.0%         362         0.2%         -         0.0%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Consolidated

     $ -         0.0%         $ 362         0.0%         $ 1,908         0.2%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Impairment of long-lived assets:

                 

Americas

     $ 1,244         0.1%         $ 3,121         0.3%         $ -         0.0%   

EMEA

     474         0.2%         159         0.1%         -         0.0%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Consolidated

     $ 1,718         0.1%         $ 3,280         0.3%         $ -         0.0%   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

32


Table of Contents

2011 Compared to 2010

Revenues

For 2011, we recognized consolidated revenues of $1,169.3 million, an increase of $47.4 million or 4.2%, from $1,121.9 million in 2010.

On a geographic segment basis, revenues from the Americas region, including the United States, Canada, Latin America, Australia and the Asia Pacific Rim, represented 82.4%, or $963.1 million, for 2011 compared to 83.3%, or $934.3 million, for the comparable period in 2010. Revenues from the EMEA region, including Europe, the Middle East and Africa, represented 17.6%, or $206.2 million, for the year ended December 31, 2011 compared to 16.7%, or $187.6 million, for the comparable period in 2010.

America’s revenues increased $28.8 million, including the positive foreign currency impact of $10.8 million, for 2011 from 2010, principally due to higher acquisition-related revenues of $4.2 million, new client programs and higher volumes within new and certain existing clients. Revenues from our offshore operations represented 47.8% of Americas’ revenues, compared to 47.7% in 2010. While operating margins generated offshore are generally comparable to those in the United States, our ability to maintain these offshore operating margins longer term is difficult to predict due to potential increased competition for the available workforce, the trend of higher occupancy costs and costs of functional currency fluctuations in offshore markets. We weight these factors in our focus to re-price or replace certain sub-profitable target client programs.

EMEA’s revenues increased $18.6 million, including the positive foreign currency impact of $9.9 million, for the year ended December 31, 2011 from the comparable period in 2010, principally due to new client programs and higher volumes within new and certain existing clients. This $18.6 million increase is net of a $1.2 million decrease in revenues due to the closure of certain sites in connection with the Fourth Quarter 2010 Exit Plan.

Direct Salaries and Related Costs

Direct salaries and related costs increased $48.4 million, or 6.7%, to $763.9 million for 2011 from $715.5 million in 2010.

On a reporting segment basis, direct salaries and related costs from the Americas segment increased $31.1 million, including the negative foreign currency impact of $16.9 million, for 2011 from 2010. Direct salaries and related costs from the EMEA segment increased $17.3 million, including the negative foreign currency impact of $7.2 million, for 2011 from 2010.

In the Americas segment, as a percentage of revenues, direct salaries and related costs increased to 63.5% for 2011 from 62.2% in 2010. This increase of 1.3%, as a percentage of revenues, was primarily attributable to higher compensation costs of 1.4% (principally related to lower volumes within certain existing clients without a commensurate reduction in labor costs) and higher other costs of 0.1%, partially offset by lower communication costs of 0.2%.

In the EMEA segment, as a percentage of revenues, direct salaries and related costs increased to 73.8% for 2011 from 71.9% in 2010. This increase of 1.9%, as a percentage of revenues, was primarily attributable to higher severance costs of 0.7% due to the closure of certain sites in connection with the Fourth Quarter 2011 Exit Plan, higher compensation costs of 0.6%, higher fulfillment shipping material costs of 0.4%, higher communication costs of 0.2%, higher automobile-related costs of 0.2% and higher other costs of 0.1%, partially offset by lower travel costs of 0.3%.

General and Administrative

General and administrative expenses decreased $25.0 million, or 6.8%, to $341.6 million for 2011 from $366.6 million in 2010.

On a reporting segment basis, general and administrative expenses from the Americas segment decreased $6.3 million, including the negative foreign currency impact of $5.3 million, for 2011 from 2010. General and administrative expenses from the EMEA segment decreased $0.5 million, including the negative foreign currency impact of $2.5 million, for 2011 from 2010. Corporate general and administrative expenses decreased $18.2 million

 

33


Table of Contents

for 2011 from 2010. This decrease of $18.2 million was primarily attributable to lower merger and acquisition costs of $22.9 million, partially offset by higher legal and professional fees of $1.4 million, higher charitable contributions of $1.3 million, higher software maintenance of $0.6 million, higher compensation costs of $0.6 million, higher consulting costs of $0.2 million, higher training costs of $0.2 million and higher other costs of $0.4 million.

In the Americas segment, as a percentage of revenues, general and administrative expenses decreased to 24.7% for 2011 from 26.1% in 2010. This decrease of 1.4%, as a percentage of revenues, was primarily attributable to lower merger and acquisition costs of 0.9%, lower depreciation of 0.3% and lower other taxes of 0.2%.

In the EMEA segment, as a percentage of revenues, general and administrative expenses decreased to 27.8% for 2011 from 30.8% in 2010. This decrease of 3.0%, as a percentage of revenues, was primarily attributable to lower compensation costs of 1.2%, lower merger and acquisition costs of 1.0%, lower facility-related costs of 0.6%, lower travel costs of 0.3%, lower legal and professional fees of 0.3% and lower other costs of 0.4%, partially offset by higher severance costs of 0.8% primarily due to the closure of certain sites in connection with the Fourth Quarter 2011 Exit Plan.

Net (Gain) Loss on Disposal of Property and Equipment

Net (gain) on disposal of property and equipment was $(3.0) million during 2011, primarily due to the gain on the sale of land and a building located in Minot, North Dakota. Net loss on disposal of property and equipment was $0.1 million during 2010.

Net (Gain) on Insurance Settlement

Net (gain) on insurance settlement of $(0.5) million and $(2.0) million in 2011 and 2010, respectively, primarily relates to funds received for flood damage from Typhoon Ondoy to the building and contents of one of our customer contact management centers located in Marikina City, The Philippines (acquired as part of the ICT acquisition). The damaged property and equipment had been written down by ICT prior to the ICT acquisition in February 2010. No additional funds are expected related to the Typhoon Ondoy insurance claim.

Impairment of Goodwill and Intangibles

We make certain estimates and assumptions, including, among other things, an assessment of market conditions and projections of cash flows, investment rates and cost of capital and growth rates when estimating the value of our intangibles. Based on actual and forecasted operating results and deterioration of the related customer base in our ICT-acquired United Kingdom operations, the EMEA segment recorded a $0.4 million impairment of goodwill and intangibles, primarily customer relationships, during 2010 (none in 2011).

Impairment of Long-Lived Assets

During 2011, we recorded a $1.7 million impairment of long-lived assets, primarily leasehold improvements and equipment, consisting of $1.2 million in the Americas segment and $0.5 million in the EMEA segment. During 2010, we recorded a $3.3 million impairment of long-lived assets, primarily leasehold improvements and equipment, consisting of $3.1 million in the Americas segment and $0.2 million in the EMEA segment. The impairments represented the amount by which the carrying value of the assets exceeded the estimated fair value of those assets which cannot be redeployed to other locations.

Interest Income

Interest income was $1.4 million for 2011, compared to $1.2 million in 2010. The increase of $0.2 million reflects higher average balances of interest bearing investments in cash and cash equivalents.

Interest (Expense)

Interest (expense) was $(1.1) million for 2011, compared to $(4.9) million in 2010. The decrease of $3.8 million reflects interest and fees on higher average levels of borrowings in 2010 related to the ICT acquisition.

Other (Expense)

Other (expense), net, was $(2.1) million for 2011, compared to $(5.9) million in 2010. The net decrease in other

 

34


Table of Contents

(expense), net, of $3.8 million was primarily attributable to a decrease of $3.1 million in forward currency contract losses (which were not designated as hedging instruments) and a decrease of $1.4 million in foreign currency transaction losses, net of gains, partially offset by a decrease of $0.7 million in other miscellaneous income, net. Other (expense) excludes the cumulative translation effects and unrealized gains (losses) on financial derivatives that are included in “Accumulated other comprehensive income” in shareholders’ equity in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets.

Income Taxes

The provision for income taxes of $11.3 million for 2011 was based upon pre-tax income of $63.7 million, compared to the provision for income taxes of $2.2 million for 2010 based upon pre-tax income of $28.3 million. The effective tax rate was 17.8% for 2011, compared to an effective tax rate of 7.8% for 2010.

The increase in the effective tax rate of 10.0% resulted primarily from the shift of earnings to higher tax jurisdictions, partially offset by a favorable foreign tax rate differential, changes in uncertain tax positions due to the favorable settlements of tax audits and expiring statutes of limitation, in conjunction with 2010 tax benefits related to the ICT legal entity reorganization.

On December 17, 2010 the Tax Relief, Unemployment Insurance Reauthorization, and Job Creation Act of 2010 (the “Tax Relief Act”) was enacted. Included in the Tax Relief Act is the extension until December 31, 2011 of Internal Revenue Code Section 954(c)(6). As a result of this extension, we changed our intent to distribute current earnings from various foreign operations to their foreign parents. These tax provisions permit continued tax deferral through 2011 on such distributions that would otherwise be taxable immediately in the United States. While the distributions are not taxable in the United States, related withholding taxes of $2.7 million are included in the provision for income taxes in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for 2011.

Prior to the passage of the Tax Relief Act, we determined that we intended to distribute all of the current year and future years’ earnings of a non-U.S. subsidiary to its foreign parent. Withholding taxes of $0.9 million related to this distribution are included in the provision for income taxes in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for 2011.

(Loss) from Discontinued Operations

In November 2011, we committed to a plan to sell our Spanish operations. Also, in December 2010, we sold our Argentine operations. Accordingly, we have reflected the operating results related to these operations as discontinued operations in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations for all periods presented. The (loss) from discontinued operations, net of taxes, totaled $(4.6) million and $(12.9) million for 2011 and 2010, respectively. The gain (loss) on sale, net of taxes, of the Argentine operations totaled $0.5 million and $(23.5) million for 2011 and 2010, respectively. The gain on sale during 2011 resulted from the reversal of the accrued liability related to the expiration of the indemnification to the purchaser for the possible loss of a specific client business.

Net Income (Loss)

As a result of the foregoing, we reported income from continuing operations for 2011 of $65.5 million, an increase of $27.6 million from 2010. This increase was principally attributable to a $47.4 million increase in revenues, a $25.0 million decrease in general and administrative costs, a $3.1 million increase in net gain on disposal of property and equipment, a $1.6 million decrease in impairment of long-lived assets and a decrease in impairment of goodwill and intangibles of $0.4 million, partially offset by a $48.4 million increase in direct salaries and related costs and a $1.5 million decrease in net gain on insurance settlement. In addition to the $27.6 million increase in income from continuing operations, we experienced a $3.8 million decrease in other expense, net, a decrease in interest expense of $3.8 million, a $0.2 million increase in interest income, a decrease of $8.3 million in loss from discontinued operations and a $24.0 million decrease in loss on sale of discontinued operations, partially offset by an increase of $9.1 million in the tax provision, resulting in net income of $48.3 million for 2011, an increase of $58.6 million compared to 2010.

 

35


Table of Contents

2010 Compared to 2009

Revenues

In 2010, we recognized consolidated revenues of $1,121.9 million, an increase of $352.5 million or 45.8%, from $769.4 million in 2009. Excluding the ICT revenues of $362.7 million, revenues decreased $10.2 million for 2010 compared to 2009.

On a geographic segment basis, revenues from the Americas region, including the United States, Canada, Latin America, Australia and the Asia Pacific Rim, represented 83.3%, or $934.3 million, for 2010 compared to 73.4%, or $565.0 million, for 2009. Revenues from the EMEA region, including Europe, the Middle East and Africa, represented 16.7%, or $187.6 million, for 2010 compared to 26.6%, or $204.4 million, for 2009.

Americas’ revenues increased $369.3 million, including the positive foreign currency impact of $36.2 million, for 2010 from 2009, principally due to higher acquisition-related revenues of $361.5 million, partially offset by expiration of certain client programs and lower than forecasted demand within certain clients. Revenues from our offshore operations represented 47.7% of Americas’ revenues for 2010, compared to 57.5% in 2009. While operating margins generated offshore are generally comparable to those in the United States, our ability to maintain these offshore operating margins longer term is difficult to predict due to potential increased competition for the available workforce, the trend of higher occupancy costs and costs of functional currency fluctuations in offshore markets. We weight these factors in our focus to re-price or replace certain sub-profitable target client programs.

EMEA’s revenues decreased $16.8 million, including the negative foreign currency impact of $3.2 million, for 2010 from 2009, principally due largely to client program expirations, near-shore migration to lower cost geographies in Egypt, Romania and Germany and sustained weakness in the technology and communication verticals. This decrease is partially offset by a $1.2 million increase in acquisition-related revenues.

Direct Salaries and Related Costs

Direct salaries and related costs increased $233.7 million, or 48.5%, to $715.5 million for 2010 from $481.8 million in 2009. This increase includes ICT direct salaries and related costs of $230.1 million for 2010.

On a reporting segment basis, direct salaries and related costs from the Americas segment increased $239.0 million, including the negative foreign currency impact of $26.4 million, for 2010 from 2009. Direct salaries and related costs from the EMEA segment decreased $5.3 million, including the positive foreign currency impact of $2.6 million, for 2010 from 2009.

In the Americas segment, as a percentage of revenues, direct salaries and related costs increased to 62.2% for 2010 from 60.5% in 2009. This increase of 1.7%, as a percentage of revenues, was primarily attributable to higher compensation costs of 2.8% (related to lower than forecasted demand within certain clients without a commensurate reduction in labor costs and wage increases in certain geographies), higher communication costs of 0.6% and higher billable supply costs of 0.3%, partially offset by lower automobile tow claim costs of 1.4%, lower travel costs of 0.2%, lower bonus award costs of 0.1% and lower other costs of 0.3%.

In the EMEA segment, as a percentage of revenues, direct salaries and related costs increased to 71.9% for 2010 from 68.6% in 2009. This increase of 3.3%, as a percentage of revenues, was primarily attributable to higher compensation costs of 1.7% (related to near-shore migration to new facilities in Egypt, Romania and Germany and the corresponding termination and duplicative costs), higher severance costs of 0.8%, higher recruiting costs of 0.3%, higher communication costs of 0.2%, higher travel costs of 0.2% and higher other costs of 0.1%.

General and Administrative

General and administrative expenses increased $152.3 million, or 71.1%, to $366.6 million for 2010 from $214.3 million in 2009. This increase includes ICT general and administrative costs of $139.6 million for 2010.

On a reporting segment basis, general and administrative expenses from the Americas segment increased $124.2 million, including the negative foreign currency impact of $8.3 million, for 2010 from 2009. General and administrative expenses from the EMEA segment increased $7.0 million, including the positive foreign currency impact of $1.3 million, for 2010 from 2009. Corporate general and administrative expenses increased $21.1 million for 2010 from 2009. This increase of $21.1 million was primarily attributable to higher merger and acquisition costs

 

36


Table of Contents

of $20.9 million, higher compensation costs of $0.6 million, higher travel costs of $0.4 million, higher dues and subscriptions of $0.3 million and higher training costs of $0.3 million, partially offset by lower legal and professional fees of $0.9 million and lower business development costs of $0.4 million and lower other costs of $0.1 million.

In the Americas segment, as a percentage of revenues, general and administrative expenses increased to 26.1% for 2010 from 21.2% in 2009. This increase of 4.9%, as a percentage of revenues, was primarily attributable to higher depreciation costs of 1.9%, higher facility-related costs of 1.3%, higher merger and acquisition costs of 0.9%, higher equipment and maintenance costs of 0.7% and higher compensation costs of 0.5%, partially offset by lower bad debt expense of 0.2% and lower other costs of 0.2%.

In the EMEA segment, as a percentage of revenues, general and administrative expenses increased to 30.8% for 2010 from 24.8% in 2009. This increase of 6.0%, as a percentage of revenues, was primarily attributable to higher facility-related costs of 1.9%, higher compensation costs of 0.9% (related to near-shore migration to new facilities in Egypt, Romania and Germany in 2010 and the corresponding termination and duplicative costs), higher merger and acquisition costs of 0.9%, higher travel costs of 0.6%, higher legal and professional fees of 0.5%, higher depreciation costs of 0.4%, higher equipment and maintenance costs of 0.2%, higher communications costs of 0.2% and higher other costs of 0.4%.

Net (Gain) Loss on Disposal of Property and Equipment

Net loss on disposal of property and equipment was $0.1 million during 2010, compared to $0.2 million in 2009, a decrease of $0.1 million.

Net (Gain) on Insurance Settlement

Net (gain) on insurance settlement of $(2.0) million in 2010 (none in 2009) relates to funds received for flood damage from Typhoon Ondoy to the building and contents of one of our customer contact management centers located in Marikina City, The Philippines (acquired as part of the ICT acquisition). The damaged property and equipment had been written down by ICT prior to the ICT acquisition in February 2010.

Impairment of Goodwill and Intangibles

We make certain estimates and assumptions, including, among other things, an assessment of market conditions and projections of cash flows, investment rates and cost of capital and growth rates when estimating the value of our intangibles. Based on actual and forecasted operating results and deterioration of the related customer base in our ICT-acquired United Kingdom operations, the EMEA segment recorded a $0.4 million impairment of goodwill and intangibles, primarily customer relationships, during 2010. The Americas segment recorded a $1.9 million impairment of goodwill and intangibles during 2009 related to the March 2005 acquisition of KLA.

Impairment of Long-Lived Assets

During 2010, we recorded a $3.3 million impairment of long-lived assets, primarily leasehold improvements and equipment, consisting of $3.1 million in the Americas segment and $0.2 million in the EMEA segment (none in 2009). The impairments represented the amount by which the carrying value of the assets exceeded the estimated fair value of those assets which cannot be redeployed to other locations.

Interest Income

Interest income was $1.2 million during 2010, compared to $2.3 million in 2009. The decrease of $1.1 million reflects lower average rates earned on lower average balances of interest bearing investments in cash and cash equivalents.

Interest (Expense)

Interest (expense) was $(4.9) million during 2010, compared to $(0.2) million in 2009. The increase of $4.7 million reflecting interest and fees on higher average levels of borrowings in 2010 related to the ICT acquisition.

 

37


Table of Contents

Impairment (Loss) on Investment in SHPS

In the Americas segment, we recorded an impairment of $2.1 million on our entire investment in SHPS during 2009 (none in 2010).

Other (Expense)

Other (expense), net, was $(5.9) million during 2010, compared to $(0.3) million in 2009. The net increase in other (expense), net, of $5.6 million was primarily attributable to an increase of $2.6 million in forward currency contract losses (which were not designated as hedging instruments), an increase of $2.6 million in foreign currency transaction losses, net of gains, and a decrease of $0.4 million in other miscellaneous income, net. Other (expense) excludes the cumulative translation effects and unrealized gains (losses) on financial derivatives that are included in “Accumulated other comprehensive income” in shareholders’ equity in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets.

Income Taxes

The provision for income taxes of $2.2 million for 2010 was based upon pre-tax income of $28.3 million, compared to the provision for income taxes of $26.1 million for 2009 based upon pre-tax income of $70.8 million. The effective tax rate was 7.8% for 2010 compared to an effective tax rate of 36.9% for 2009.

The decrease in the effective tax rate of 29.1% resulted primarily from the proportionately higher income under tax holiday jurisdictions, the foreign tax rate differential, a favorable change in uncertain tax positions due to a favorable settlement of a tax audit, expiring statutes of limitation and tax benefits related to the ICT legal entity reorganization, and the absence of an unfavorable impact related to the $85.0 million change of intent to repatriate foreign earnings in 2009, partially offset by the lack of a release of valuation allowances and a higher proportion of withholding taxes in 2010.

On December 17, 2010 the Tax Relief Act was enacted. Included in the Tax Relief Act is the extension until December 31, 2011 of Internal Revenue Code Section 954(c)(6). As a result of this extension, we changed our intent to distribute current earnings from various foreign operations to their foreign parents. These tax provisions permit continued tax deferral on such distributions that would otherwise be taxable immediately in the United States. While the distributions are not taxable in the United States, related withholding taxes of $1.7 million are included in the provision for income taxes in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for 2010.

Prior to the passage of the Tax Relief Act, we determined that we intended to distribute all of the current year and future years’ earnings of a non-U.S. subsidiary to its foreign parent. Withholding taxes of $0.9 million related to this distribution are included in the provision for income taxes in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for 2010.

(Loss) from Discontinued Operations

In November 2011, we committed to a plan to sell our Spanish operations. Also, in December 2010, we sold our Argentine operations. Accordingly, we have reflected the operating results related to these operations as discontinued operations in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations for all periods presented. The (loss) from discontinued operations, net of taxes, totaled $(12.9) million and $(1.5) million for 2010 and 2009, respectively. The (loss) on sale, net of taxes, of the Argentine operations totaled $(23.5) million for 2010 (none in 2009).

Net Income (Loss)

As a result of the foregoing, we reported income from continuing operations for 2010 of $38.0 million, a decrease of $33.2 million from 2009. This decrease was principally attributable to a $233.7 million increase in direct salaries and related costs, a $152.3 million increase in general and administrative costs and a $3.3 million impairment of long-lived assets, partially offset by a $352.5 million increase in revenues, a $2.0 million net gain on insurance settlement, a decrease in impairment of goodwill and intangibles of $1.5 million and a $0.1 million decrease in net loss on disposal of property and equipment. In addition to the $33.2 million decrease in income from continuing operations, we experienced a $5.6 million increase in other expense, net, an increase in interest expense of $4.7 million, a $1.1 million decrease in interest income, an increase of $11.4 million of loss from discontinued operations and a $23.5 million loss on sale of discontinued operations, partially offset by a decrease of $2.1 million due to the

 

38


Table of Contents

impairment loss on investment in SHPS in 2009 and a $23.9 million lower tax provision, resulting in a net loss of $10.3 million for 2010, a decrease of $53.5 million compared to 2009.

Quarterly Results

The following information presents our unaudited quarterly operating results from continuing operations for 2011 and 2010. During 2011, we committed to a plan to sell our operations in Spain. Also, we sold our Argentine operations during 2010. Accordingly, we have reclassified the selected financial data for all periods presented to reflect these results as discontinued operations in accordance with Accounting Standards Codification 205-20 “Discontinued Operations”. The data has been prepared on a basis consistent with the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements included elsewhere in this Annual Report on Form 10-K, and includes all adjustments, consisting of normal recurring accruals, that we consider necessary for a fair presentation thereof.

 

39


Table of Contents

 

(in thousands, except per share data)     12/31/2011         9/30/2011         6/30/2011         3/31/2011         12/31/2010         9/30/2010         6/30/2010         3/31/2010    

Revenues (1)

    $     276,234         $     293,310         $     300,273         $     299,450        $     300,422         $     286,499          $     280,377          $     254,613     
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Operating expenses:

               

Direct salaries and related costs (1,2)

      181,978         189,082           198,779           194,091           191,517           182,825            180,118           161,111    

General and administrative (1,3,4)

      82,086         82,553           88,370           88,577           94,978           85,288            88,237           98,062    

Net (gain) loss on disposal of property and equipment (5)

      411           (8)          (3,611)          187           143                         

Net (gain) on insurance settlement

           (437)               (44)        (1,991)                        

Impairment of goodwill and intangibles

                                       362                  

Impairment of long-lived assets

    954         38                726         177         3,103                  
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Total operating expenses

    265,429         271,228         283,538         283,537         284,824         271,578         268,355         259,173   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Income (loss) from continuing operations

    10,805         22,082         16,735         15,913         15,598         14,921         12,022         (4,560)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Other income (expense):

               

Interest income

    405         357         310         280         393         308         272         228   

Interest (expense) (6)

    (305)        (272)        (288)        (267)        (209)        (1,214)        (1,364)        (2,176)   

Other income (expense)

    173         (329)        (378)        (1,565)        (348)        (589)        (3,553)        (1,417)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Total other income (expense)

    273         (244)        (356)        (1,552)        (164)        (1,495)        (4,645)        (3,365)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Income (loss) from continuing operations before income taxes

    11,078         21,838         16,379         14,361         15,434         13,426         7,377         (7,925)   

Income taxes

    5,118         2,969         2,683         572         3,965         (2,267)        966         (467)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Income (loss) from continuing operations, net of taxes

    5,960         18,869         13,696         13,789         11,469         15,693         6,411         (7,458)   

(Loss) from discontinued operations, net of taxes (7)

    (1,441)        (755)        (1,725)        (611)        (4,925)        (2,047)        (3,866)        (2,055)   

Gain (loss) on sale of discontinued operations, net of taxes (8)

    559                              (23,495)                        
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Net income (loss)

    $ 5,078         $ 18,114          $ 11,971         $ 13,178          $ (16,951)        $     13,646         $     2,545         $     (9,513)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Net income (loss) per common share (9) :

               

Basic:

               

Continuing operations

    $ 0.14         $ 0.42         $ 0.30         $ 0.29         $ 0.24         $ 0.33         $ 0.13         $     (0.16)   

Discontinued operations

    (0.02)        (0.02)        (0.04)        (0.01)        (0.61)        (0.04)        (0.08)        (0.05)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Net income (loss) per common share

    $ 0.12         $ 0.40         $ 0.26         $ 0.28         $ (0.37)        $ 0.29         $ 0.05         $ (0.21)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Diluted:

               

Continuing operations

    $ 0.14         $ 0.42         $ 0.30         $ 0.29         $ 0.24         $ 0.33         $ 0.13         $ (0.16)   

Discontinued operations

    (0.02)        (0.02)        (0.04)        (0.01)        (0.61)        (0.04)        (0.08)        (0.05)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Net income (loss) per common share

    $ 0.12         $ 0.40         $ 0.26         $ 0.28         $ (0.37)        $ 0.29         $ 0.05         $ (0.21)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Weighted average shares:

               

Basic

    43,659         45,557         46,241         46,409         46,451         46,468         46,601         44,590    

Diluted

    43,847         45,653         46,293         46,577         46,563         46,559         46,648         44,766    

 

(1)

The amounts for each of the quarters include the results of ICT as a result of the acquisition completed on February 2, 2010.

(2)

The quarter ended December 31, 2011 includes $3.5 million related to the Fourth Quarter 2011 Exit Plan.

(3)

The quarter ended December 31, 2011 includes $2.3 million related to the Fourth Quarter 2011 Exit Plan.

(4)

The quarters ended December 31, 2011, September 30, 2011, June 30, 2011, and March 31, 2011 include $1.9 million, $3.0 million, $3.5 million and $3.4 million, respectively, in ICT acquisition-related costs. The quarters ended December 31, 2010, September 30, 2010, June 30, 2010, and March 31, 2010 include $10.8 million, $6.3 million, $6.0 million and $23.2 million, respectively, in ICT acquisition-related costs.

(5)

The quarter ended June 30, 2011 includes a $3.7 million net gain on sale of the land and building located in Minot, North Dakota.

(6)

The quarters ended September 30, 2010, June 30, 2010, and March 31, 2010 include interest and amortization of deferred loan fees related to the $75 million Term Loan, the $75 million revolving credit facility and the $75 million Bermuda Credit Agreement. The Term Loan and the Bermuda Credit Agreement were paid off in September 2010 and March 2010, respectively. See Note 20, Borrowings, of the accompanying “Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements”.

(7)

The amounts for each of the quarters for 2011 and 2010 include the results of our operations in Spain. The amounts for each of the quarters in 2010 include the results of our Argentine operations, which was sold in 2010.

(8)

The quarters ended December 31, 2011 and 2010 include a gain (loss) on the sale of our Argentine operations.

(9)

Net income (loss) per basic and diluted common share is computed independently for each of the quarters presented and, therefore, may not sum to the total for the year.

 

40


Table of Contents

Liquidity and Capital Resources

Our primary sources of liquidity are generally cash flows generated by operating activities and from available borrowings under our revolving credit facility. We utilize these capital resources to make capital expenditures associated primarily with our customer contact management services, invest in technology applications and tools to further develop our service offerings and for working capital and other general corporate purposes, including repurchase of our common stock in the open market and to fund possible acquisitions. In future periods, we intend similar uses of these funds.

On August 5, 2002, our Board authorized us to purchase up to 3.0 million shares of our outstanding common stock (the “2002 Share Repurchase Program”) and on August 18, 2011, our Board authorized us to purchase up to 5.0 million shares of our outstanding common stock (the “2011 Share Repurchase Program”). During 2011, we repurchased a total of 3.3 million shares of common stock under these plans.

During 2011, we repurchased 0.8 million common shares under the 2002 Share Repurchase Program at prices ranging from $12.46 to $18.53 per share for a total cost of $12.3 million. During 2010, we repurchased 0.3 million common shares at prices ranging from $16.92 to $17.60 per share for a total cost of $5.2 million. During 2009, we repurchased 0.2 million common shares at prices ranging from $13.72 to $14.75 per share for a total cost of $3.2 million. All available shares under the 2002 Share Repurchase Program have been repurchased.

During 2011, we repurchased 2.5 million common shares under the 2011 Share Repurchase Program at prices ranging from $14.18 to $16.10 per share for a total cost of $37.7 million. The shares are purchased, from time to time, through open market purchases or in negotiated private transactions, and the purchases are based on factors, including but not limited to, the stock price and general market conditions. The 2011 Share Repurchase Program has no expiration date. We may make additional discretionary stock repurchases under this program in 2012.

During 2011, cash increased $102.6 million from operating activities, proceeds from sale of property and equipment of $4.0 million, proceeds from an insurance settlement of $1.7 million and proceeds from issuance of stock of $0.3 million. Further, we used $50.0 million on the repurchase of our stock, $29.9 million for capital expenditures, $1.2 million to repurchase stock for minimum tax withholding on equity awards, $0.2 million to refund grants and $0.1 million investment in restricted cash resulting in a $21.3 million increase in available cash (including the unfavorable effects of international currency exchange rates on cash of $5.9 million).

Net cash flows provided by operating activities for 2011 were $102.6 million, compared to $45.1 million provided by operating activities for 2010. The $57.5 million increase in net cash flows from operating activities was due to a $58.6 million increase in net income and a net increase of $15.0 million in cash flows from assets and liabilities, partially offset by a $16.1 million decrease in non-cash reconciling items such as the loss on sale of discontinued operations, depreciation and amortization, net gain on disposal of property and equipment, impairment charges, valuation allowance on deferred tax assets and stock-based compensation. The $15.0 million increase in cash flows from assets and liabilities was principally a result of a $19.6 million decrease in receivables, a $4.0 million increase in deferred revenue and a $1.7 million increase in income taxes payable, partially offset by a $6.0 million decrease in other liabilities and a $4.3 million increase in other assets. The increase in cash flows from assets and liabilities primarily relates to the timing of receivables’ billings and subsequent payments of those billings, coupled with a reduction in revenues in the fourth quarter in 2011 over the comparable period in 2010.

During 2011, we committed to a plan to sell our operations in Spain. During 2010, we sold our Argentine operations. Cash flows from discontinued operations were as follows (in millions):

 

    Years Ended December 31,  
        2011                 2010                 2009          

Cash provided by (used for) operating activities of discontinued operations

    $                 (4.7)            $                 (6.6)            $                 2.2         

Cash provided by (used for) investing activities of discontinued operations

    (0.3)            (13.5)            (1.7)        

Cash provided by (used for) operating activities of discontinued operations represents the cash provided by (used for) the Spanish and Argentine operations in 2011, 2010 and 2009. Cash (used for) investing activities of discontinued operations represents capital expenditures in 2011 and 2009. Cash (used for) investing activities of discontinued operations in 2010 primarily represents cash on the balance sheet of the Argentine operations at the time of the sale. The sale of the Argentine operations resulted in a pre-tax loss of $29.9 million, or a $23.5 million loss, net of tax. We do not expect the absence of the cash flows from our discontinued operations in Spain to materially affect our future liquidity and capital resources.

 

41


Table of Contents

Capital expenditures, which are generally funded by cash generated from operating activities, available cash balances and borrowings available under our credit facilities, were $29.9 million for 2011, compared to $28.5 million for 2010, an increase of $1.4 million. In 2012, we anticipate capital expenditures in the range of $33.0 million to $35.0 million, primarily for maintenance and systems infrastructure.

On February 2, 2010, we entered into a Credit Agreement (the “Credit Agreement”) with a group of lenders and KeyBank, as Lead Arranger, Sole Book Runner and Administrative Agent. The Credit Agreement provides for a $75 million revolving credit facility, which is subject to certain borrowing limitations and includes certain customary financial and restrictive covenants. At December 31, 2011, we were in compliance with all loan requirements of the Credit Agreement and had no outstanding borrowings under the facility.

The $75 million revolving credit facility provided under the Credit Agreement includes a $40 million multi-currency sub-facility, a $10 million swingline sub-facility and a $5 million letter of credit sub-facility, which may be used for general corporate purposes including strategic acquisitions, share repurchases, working capital support, and letters of credit, subject to certain limitations. We are not currently aware of any inability of our lenders to provide access to the full commitment of funds that exist under the revolving credit facility, if necessary. However, there can be no assurance that such facility will be available to us, even though it is a binding commitment. The revolving credit facility will mature on February 1, 2013.

Borrowings under the Credit Agreement bear interest at either LIBOR or the base rate plus, in each case, an applicable margin based on our leverage ratio. The applicable interest rate is determined quarterly based on our leverage ratio at such time. The base rate is a rate per annum equal to the greatest of (i) the rate of interest established by KeyBank, from time to time, as its “prime rate”; (ii) the Federal Funds effective rate in effect from time to time, plus 1/2 of 1% per annum; and (iii) the then-applicable LIBOR rate for one month interest periods, plus 1.00%. Swingline loans bear interest only at the base rate plus the base rate margin. In addition, we are required to pay certain customary fees, including a commitment fee of up to 0.75%, which is due quarterly in arrears and calculated on the average unused amount of the revolving credit facility.

The Credit Agreement is guaranteed by all of our existing and future direct and indirect material U.S. subsidiaries and secured by a pledge of 100% of the non-voting and 65% of the voting capital stock of all of our direct foreign subsidiaries and those of the guarantors.

As of December 31, 2011, we had $211.1 million in cash and cash equivalents, of which approximately 77.6% or $163.9 million, was held in international operations and may be subject to additional taxes if repatriated to the United States, including withholding tax applied by the country of origin and an incremental U.S. income tax, net of allowable foreign tax credits. There are circumstances where we may be unable to repatriate some of the cash and cash equivalents held by our international operations due to country restrictions.

We believe that our current cash levels, accessible funds under our credit facilities and cash flows generated from future operations will be adequate to meet anticipated working capital needs, any future debt repayment requirements, continued expansion objectives, funding of potential acquisitions, anticipated levels of capital expenditures and contractual obligations for the next twelve months and any stock repurchases. Our cash resources could also be affected by various risks and uncertainties, including, but not limited to the risks detailed in Item 1A, Risk Factors.

Off-Balance Sheet Arrangements and Other

At December 31, 2011, we did not have any material commercial commitments, including guarantees or standby repurchase obligations, or any relationships with unconsolidated entities or financial partnerships, including entities often referred to as structured finance or special purpose entities or variable interest entities, which would have been established for the purpose of facilitating off-balance sheet arrangements or other contractually narrow or limited purposes.

From time to time, during the normal course of business, we may make certain indemnities, commitments and guarantees under which we may be required to make payments in relation to certain transactions. These include, but are not limited to: (i) indemnities to clients, vendors and service providers pertaining to claims based on negligence or willful misconduct and (ii) indemnities involving breach of contract, the accuracy of representations and warranties, or other liabilities assumed by us in certain contracts. In addition, we have agreements whereby we will

 

42


Table of Contents

indemnify certain officers and directors for certain events or occurrences while the officer or director is, or was, serving at our request in such capacity. The indemnification period covers all pertinent events and occurrences during the officer’s or director’s lifetime. The maximum potential amount of future payments we could be required to make under these indemnification agreements is unlimited; however, we have director and officer insurance coverage that limits our exposure and enables us to recover a portion of any future amounts paid. We believe the applicable insurance coverage is generally adequate to cover any estimated potential liability under these indemnification agreements. The majority of these indemnities, commitments and guarantees do not provide for any limitation of the maximum potential for future payments we could be obligated to make. We have not recorded any liability for these indemnities, commitments and other guarantees in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets. In addition, we have some client contracts that do not contain contractual provisions for the limitation of liability, and other client contracts that contain agreed upon exceptions to limitation of liability. We have not recorded any liability in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets with respect to any client contracts under which we have or may have unlimited liability.

Contractual Obligations

The following table summarizes our contractual cash obligations at December 31, 2011, and the effect these obligations are expected to have on liquidity and cash flow in future periods (in thousands):

 

    Payments Due By Period  
    Total     Less Than 1
Year
    1 - 3 Years     3 - 5 Years     After 5
Years
    Other  

Operating leases (1) 

    $ 54,255          $ 25,338          $ 12,878          $ 7,385          $ 8,654          $ -     

Purchase obligations and other (2)

      23,659            15,450            8,209            -            -            -     

Accounts payable (3)

      23,109            23,109            -            -            -            -     

Accrued employee compensation and benefits (3)

      62,430            62,430            -            -            -            -     

Other accrued expenses and current liabilities (4)

      20,421            20,421            -            -            -            -     

Long-term tax liabilities (5)

      26,475            14,300            -            -            -            12,175     

Other long-term liabilities (6)

      5,080            -            1,838            1,372            1,870            -     
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 
    $       215,429          $     161,048          $     22,925          $     8,757          $     10,524          $       12,175     
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

 

(1) 

Amounts represent the expected cash payments of our operating leases as discussed in Note 24 to the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements.

 

(2)

Purchase obligations include agreements to purchase goods or services that are enforceable and legally binding on us and that specify all significant terms, including: fixed or minimum quantities to be purchased; fixed, minimum or variable price provisions; and the approximate timing of the transaction. Purchase obligations exclude agreements that are cancelable without penalty.

 

(3) 

Accounts payable and accrued employee compensation and benefits (See Note 16 to the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements), which represent amounts due vendors and employees payable within one year.

 

(4)

Other accrued expenses and current liabilities, which exclude deferred grants, include amounts as disclosed in Note 18 to the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements, primarily related to restructuring costs, legal and professional fees, telephone charges, rent, derivative contracts and other accruals.

 

(5)

Long-term tax liabilities include uncertain tax positions and related penalties and interest as discussed in Note 22 to the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements. We cannot make reasonably reliable estimates of the cash settlement of $12.2 million of the long-term liabilities with the taxing authority; therefore, amounts have been excluded from payments due by period.

 

(6)

Other long-term liabilities, which exclude deferred income taxes and other non-cash long-term liabilities, represent the expected cash payments due under restructuring accruals (primarily lease obligations) and pension obligations. See Notes 4 and 25 to the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements.

Critical Accounting Policies and Estimates

The preparation of consolidated financial statements in conformity with accounting principles generally accepted in the United States requires estimations and assumptions that affect the reported amounts of assets and liabilities and the disclosure of contingent assets and liabilities at the date of the financial statements and the reported amounts of revenues and expenses during the reporting period. These estimates and assumptions are based on historical experience and various other factors that are believed to be reasonable under the circumstances. Actual results could differ from these estimates under different assumptions or conditions.

We believe the following accounting policies are the most critical since these policies require significant judgment or involve complex estimations that are important to the portrayal of our financial condition and operating results. Unless we need to clarify a point to readers, we will refrain from citing specific section references when discussing the application of accounting principles or addressing new or pending accounting rule changes.

 

43


Table of Contents

Recognition of Revenue

We recognize revenue in accordance with ASC 605 “Revenue Recognition”.

We primarily recognize revenues from services as the services are performed, which is based on either a per minute, per call or per transaction basis, under a fully executed contractual agreement and record reductions to revenues for contractual penalties and holdbacks for failure to meet specified minimum service levels and other performance based contingencies. Revenue recognition is limited to the amount that is not contingent upon delivery of any future product or service or meeting other specified performance conditions.

Product sales, accounted for within our fulfillment services, are recognized upon shipment to the customer and satisfaction of all obligations.

In accordance with ASC 605-25 (“ASC 605-25”) “Revenue Recognition – Multiple-Element Arrangements”, revenue from contracts with multiple-deliverables is allocated to separate units of accounting based on their relative fair value, if the deliverables in the contract(s) meet the criteria for such treatment. Certain fulfillment services contracts contain multiple-deliverables. Separation criteria includes whether a delivered item has value to the customer on a stand-alone basis, whether there is objective and reliable evidence of the fair value of the undelivered items and, if the arrangement includes a general right of return related to a delivered item, whether delivery of the undelivered item is considered probable and in our control. Fair value is the price of a deliverable when it is regularly sold on a stand-alone basis, which generally consists of vendor-specific objective evidence of fair value. If there is no evidence of the fair value for a delivered product or service, revenue is allocated first to the fair value of the undelivered product or service and then the residual revenue is allocated to the delivered product or service. If there is no evidence of the fair value for an undelivered product or service, the contract(s) is accounted for as a single unit of accounting, resulting in delay of revenue recognition for the delivered product or service until the undelivered product or service portion of the contract is complete. We recognize revenues for delivered elements only when the fair values of undelivered elements are known, uncertainties regarding client acceptance are resolved, and there are no client-negotiated refund or return rights affecting the revenue recognized for delivered elements. Once we determine the allocation of revenues between deliverable elements, there are no further changes in the revenue allocation. If the separation criteria are met, revenues from these services are recognized as the services are performed under a fully executed contractual agreement. If the separation criteria are not met because there is insufficient evidence to determine fair value of one of the deliverables, all of the services are accounted for as a single combined unit of accounting. For deliverables with insufficient evidence to determine fair value, revenue is recognized on the proportional performance method using the straight-line basis over the contract period, or the actual number of operational seats used to serve the client, as appropriate. As of December 31, 2011, our fulfillment contracts with multiple-deliverables met the separation criteria as outlined in ASC 605-25 and the revenue was accounted for accordingly. We have no other contracts that contain multiple-deliverables as of December 31, 2011.

In October 2009, the Financial Accounting Standards Board amended the accounting standards for certain multiple-deliverable revenue arrangements. We adopted this guidance on a prospective basis for applicable transactions originated or materially modified since January 1, 2011, the adoption date. Since there were no such transactions executed or materially modified since adoption on January 1, 2011, there was no impact on our financial condition, results of operations and cash flows. The amended standard:

 

   

updates guidance on whether multiple deliverables exist, how the deliverables in an arrangement should be separated, and how the consideration should be allocated;

   

requires an entity to allocate revenue in an arrangement using the best estimated selling price of deliverables if a vendor does not have vendor-specific objective evidence of selling price or third-party evidence of selling price; and

   

eliminates the use of the residual method and requires an entity to allocate revenue using the relative selling price method.

Allowance for Doubtful Accounts

We maintain allowances for doubtful accounts, $4.3 million as of December 31, 2011, or 1.9% of trade account receivables, for estimated losses arising from the inability of our customers to make required payments. Our estimate is based on qualitative and quantitative analyses, including credit risk measurement tools and methodologies using the publicly available credit and capital market information, a review of the current status of our trade accounts receivable and historical collection experience of our clients. It is reasonably possible that our estimate of the allowance for doubtful accounts will change if the financial condition of our customers were to deteriorate, resulting in a reduced ability to make payments.

 

44


Table of Contents

Income Taxes

We reduce deferred tax assets by a valuation allowance if, based on the weight of available evidence, both positive and negative, for each respective tax jurisdiction, it is more likely than not that some portion or all of such deferred tax assets will not be realized. The valuation allowance for a particular tax jurisdiction is allocated between current and noncurrent deferred tax assets for that jurisdiction on a pro rata basis. Available evidence which is considered in determining the amount of valuation allowance required includes, but is not limited to, our estimate of future taxable income and any applicable tax-planning strategies. Establishment or reversal of certain valuation allowances may have a significant impact on both current and future results.

As of December 31, 2011, we determined that a total valuation allowance of $38.5 million was necessary to reduce U.S. deferred tax assets by $4.7 million and foreign deferred tax assets by $33.8 million, where it was more likely than not that some portion or all of such deferred tax assets will not be realized. The recoverability of the remaining net deferred tax asset of $22.8 million as of December 31, 2011 is dependent upon future profitability within each tax jurisdiction. As of December 31, 2011, based on our estimates of future taxable income and any applicable tax-planning strategies within various tax jurisdictions, we believe that it is more likely than not that the remaining net deferred tax assets will be realized.

A provision for income taxes has not been made for the undistributed earnings of foreign subsidiaries of approximately $333.1 million as of December 31, 2011, as the earnings are indefinitely reinvested in foreign business operations. If these earnings are repatriated or otherwise become taxable in the U.S, we would be subject to an incremental U.S. tax expense net of any allowable foreign tax credits, in addition to any applicable foreign withholding tax expense. Determination of any unrecognized deferred tax liability for temporary differences related to investments in foreign subsidiaries that are essentially permanent in nature is not practicable.

The U.S. Department of the Treasury released the “General Explanations of the Administration’s Fiscal Year 2013 Revenue Proposals” in February 2012. These proposals represent a significant shift in international tax policy, which may materially impact U.S. taxation of international earnings. We continue to monitor these proposals and are currently evaluating their potential impact on our financial condition, results of operations, and cash flows. Determination of any unrecognized deferred tax liability for temporary differences related to investments in foreign subsidiaries that are essentially permanent in nature is not practicable.

We evaluate tax positions that have been taken or are expected to be taken in our tax returns, and record a liability for uncertain tax positions in accordance with ASC 740. The calculation of our tax liabilities involves dealing with uncertainties in the application of complex tax regulations. ASC 740 contains a two-step approach to recognizing and measuring uncertain tax positions. First, tax positions are recognized if the weight of available evidence indicates that it is more likely than not that the position will be sustained upon examination, including resolution of related appeals or litigation processes, if any. Second, the tax position is measured as the largest amount of tax benefit that has a greater than 50% likelihood of being realized upon settlement. We reevaluate these uncertain tax positions on a quarterly basis. This evaluation is based on factors including, but not limited to, changes in facts or circumstances, changes in tax law, effectively settled issues under audit, and new audit activity. Such a change in recognition or measurement would result in the recognition of a tax benefit or an additional charge to the tax provision.

As of December 31, 2011, we had $17.1 million of unrecognized tax benefits, a net decrease of $3.9 million from $21.0 million as of December 31, 2010. This decrease results primarily from the expiration of statutes of limitations on certain foreign subsidiaries and the resolution of a tax audit in the current year. Had we recognized these tax benefits, approximately $17.1 million and $21.0 million and the related interest and penalties would favorably impact the effective tax rate in 2011 and 2010, respectively. We believe it is reasonably possible that our unrecognized tax benefits will decrease or be recognized in the next twelve months by up to $0.6 million due to expiration of statutes of limitations, audit or appeal resolution in various tax jurisdictions.

Our provision for income taxes is subject to volatility and is impacted by the distribution of earnings in the various domestic and international jurisdictions in which we operate. Our effective tax rate could be impacted by earnings being either proportionally lower or higher in foreign countries where we have tax rates lower than the U.S. tax rates. In addition, we have been granted tax holidays in several foreign tax jurisdictions, which have various expiration dates ranging from 2012 through 2023. If we are unable to renew a tax holiday in any of these jurisdictions, our effective tax rate could be adversely impacted. In some cases, the tax holidays expire without

 

45


Table of Contents

possibility of renewal. In other cases, we expect to renew these tax holidays, but there are no assurances from the respective foreign governments that they will permit a renewal. Our effective tax rate could also be affected by several additional factors, including changes in the valuation of our deferred tax assets or liabilities, changing legislation, regulations, and court interpretations that impact tax law in multiple tax jurisdictions in which we operate, as well as new requirements, pronouncements and rulings of certain tax, regulatory and accounting organizations.

Impairment of Goodwill, Intangibles and Other Long-Lived Assets

We review long-lived assets, which had a carrying value of $256.9 million as of December 31, 2011, including goodwill, intangibles and property and equipment for impairment whenever events or changes in circumstances indicate that the carrying value of an asset may not be recoverable and at least annually for impairment testing of goodwill. An asset is considered to be impaired when the carrying amount exceeds the fair value. Upon determination that the carrying value of the asset is impaired, we would record an impairment charge, or loss, to reduce the asset to its fair value. Future adverse changes in market conditions or poor operating results of the underlying investment could result in losses or an inability to recover the carrying value of the investment and, therefore, might require an impairment charge in the future.

New Accounting Standards Not Yet Adopted

In May 2011, the Financial Accounting Standards Board (the “FASB”) issued Accounting Standards Update (“ASU”) 2011-04 (“ASU 2011-04”) “Fair Value Measurement (Topic 820) – Amendments to Achieve Common Fair Value Measurement and Disclosure Requirements in U.S. GAAP and IFRSs”. The amendments in ASU 2011-04 result in common fair value measurement and disclosure requirements in U.S. GAAP and International Financial Reporting Standards (“IFRS”). Consequently, the amendments change the wording used to describe many of the requirements in U.S. GAAP for measuring fair value and for disclosing information about fair value measurements. Some of the amendments clarify the FASB’s intent about the application of existing fair value measurement requirements. Other amendments change a particular principle or requirement for measuring fair value or for disclosing information about fair value measurements. The amendments in ASU 2011-04 are to be applied prospectively and are effective during interim and annual periods beginning after December 15, 2011. The adoption of ASU 2011-04 as of January 1, 2012 did not have a material impact on our financial condition, results of operations and cash flows.

In June 2011, the FASB issued ASU 2011-05 (“ASU 2011-05”) “Comprehensive Income (Topic 220) – Presentation of Comprehensive Income”. The amendments in ASU 2011-05 require that all nonowner changes in stockholders’ equity be presented either in a single continuous statement of comprehensive income or in two separate but consecutive statements. In the two-statement approach, the first statement should present total net income and its components followed consecutively by a second statement that should present total other comprehensive income, the components of other comprehensive income, and the total of comprehensive income. The amendments in ASU 2011-05 are to be applied retrospectively and are effective during interim and annual periods beginning after December 15, 2011, and may be early adopted. As this standard impacts presentation only, the adoption of ASU 2011-05 as of January 1, 2012 did not impact our financial condition, results of operations and cash flows.

In September 2011, the FASB issued ASU 2011-08 (“ASU 2011-08”) “Intangibles – Goodwill and Other (Topic 350) Testing Goodwill for Impairment”. The amendments in ASU 2011-08 provide entities with the option to first assess qualitative factors to determine whether the existence of events or circumstances leads to a determination that it is more likely than not that the fair value of a reporting unit is less than its carrying amount. If, after assessing the totality of events or circumstances, an entity determines it is not more likely than not that the fair value of a reporting unit is less than its carrying amount, then performing the two-step impairment test is unnecessary. However, if an entity concludes otherwise, then it is required to perform the first step of the two-step impairment test by calculating the fair value of the reporting unit and comparing the fair value with the carrying amount of the reporting unit. If the carrying amount of a reporting unit exceeds its fair value, then the entity is required to perform the second step of the goodwill impairment test to measure the amount of the impairment loss, if any. Under the amendments in ASU 2011-08, an entity has the option to bypass the qualitative assessment for any reporting unit in any period and proceed directly to performing the first step of the two-step goodwill impairment test. An entity may resume performing the qualitative assessment in any subsequent period. The amendments in ASU 2011-08 are effective for annual and interim goodwill impairment tests performed for fiscal years beginning after December 15, 2011, and may be early adopted. The adoption of ASU 2011-08 as of January 1, 2012 did not have a material impact on our financial condition, results of operations and cash flows.

 

46


Table of Contents

In December 2011, the FASB issued ASU 2011-11 (“ASU 2011-11”) “Balance Sheet (Topic 210) – Disclosures about Offsetting Assets and Liabilities”. The amendments in ASU 2011-11 will enhance disclosures by requiring improved information about financial and derivative instruments that are either 1) offset (netting assets and liabilities) in accordance with Section 210-20-45 or Section 815-10-45 of the FASB Accounting Standards Codification or 2) subject to an enforceable master netting arrangement or similar agreement. The amendments in ASU 2011-11 are effective for fiscal years beginning on or after January 1, 2013, and interim periods within those years. An entity should provide the disclosures required by those amendments retrospectively for all comparative periods presented. We do not expect the adoption of ASU 2011-11 to materially impact our financial condition, results of operations and cash flows.

In December 2011, the FASB issued ASU 2011-12 (“ASU 2011-12”) “Comprehensive Income (Topic 220) – Deferral of the Effective Date for Amendments to the Presentation of Reclassifications of Items Out of Accumulated Other Comprehensive Income in Accounting Standards Update No. 2011-05”. The amendments in ASU 2011-12 defer the requirement to present reclassification adjustments for each component of accumulated other comprehensive income in both net income and other comprehensive income on the face of the financial statements. The amendments in ASU 2011-12 are effective at the same time as ASU 2011-05 so that entities will not be required to comply with the presentation requirements in ASU 2011-05 that ASU 2011-05 is deferring. The amendments in ASU 2011-12 are effective for fiscal years, and interim periods within those years, beginning after December 15, 2011. As ASU 2011-12 impacts presentation only, the adoption of ASU 2011-12 as of January 1, 2012 did not impact our financial condition, results of operations and cash flows.

U.S. Healthcare Reform Acts

In March 2010, the President of the United States signed into law comprehensive healthcare reform legislation under the Patient Protection and Affordable Care Act and the Health Care and Education Reconciliation Act (the “Acts”). The Acts contain provisions that could materially impact our healthcare costs in the future, thus adversely affecting our profitability. We are currently evaluating the potential impact of the Acts, if any, on our financial condition, results of operations and cash flows. Preliminary analyses indicate that the increased cost of providing healthcare benefits in the future may not materially affect our profitability; however, there are many provisions of the Acts that have yet to be defined and which may be affected by the 2012 national elections. The effect on our healthcare costs in the future may not be known for some time.

Item 7A. Quantitative and Qualitative Disclosures About Market Risk

Foreign Currency Risk

Our earnings and cash flows are subject to fluctuations due to changes in currency exchange rates. We are exposed to foreign currency exchange rate fluctuations when subsidiaries with functional currencies other than the U.S. Dollar (“USD”) are translated into our USD consolidated financial statements. As exchange rates vary, those results, when translated, may vary from expectations and adversely impact profitability. The cumulative translation effects for subsidiaries using functional currencies other than the U.S. Dollar are included in “Accumulated other comprehensive income (loss)” in shareholders’ equity. Movements in non-U.S. Dollar currency exchange rates may negatively or positively affect our competitive position, as exchange rate changes may affect business practices and/or pricing strategies of non-U.S. based competitors.

We employ a foreign currency risk management program that periodically utilizes derivative instruments to protect against unanticipated fluctuations in earnings and cash flows caused by volatility in foreign currency exchange (“FX”) rates. Option and forward derivative contracts are used to hedge intercompany receivables and payables, and other transactions initiated in the United States, that are denominated in a foreign currency. Additionally, we may employ FX contracts to hedge net investments in foreign operations.

We serve a number of U.S.-based clients using customer contact management center capacity in The Philippines, Canada and Costa Rica, which are within our Americas segment. Although the contracts with these clients are priced in USDs, a substantial portion of the costs incurred to render services under these contracts are denominated in Philippine Pesos (“PHP”), Canadian Dollars (“CAD”) and Costa Rican Colones (“CRC”), which represent FX exposures.

In order to hedge a portion of our anticipated cash flow requirements denominated in PHP and CRC, we had outstanding forward contracts and options as of December 31, 2011 with counterparties through September 2012

 

47


Table of Contents

with notional amounts totaling $127.5 million. As of December 31, 2011, we had net total derivative assets associated with these contracts with a fair value of $0.2 million, which will settle within the next 12 months. If the USD was to weaken against the PHP and CRC by 10% from current period-end levels, we would incur a loss of approximately $9.3 million on the underlying exposures of the derivative instruments. However, this loss would be mitigated by corresponding gains on the underlying exposures.

We also entered into forward exchange contracts that are not designated as hedges. The purpose of these derivative instruments is to protect against FX volatility pertaining to intercompany receivables and payables, and other assets and liabilities that are denominated in currencies other than our subsidiaries’ functional currencies. As of December 31, 2011, the fair value of these derivatives was a net payable of $0.3 million. The potential loss in fair value at December 31, 2011, for these contracts resulting from a hypothetical 10% adverse change in the foreign currency exchange rates is approximately $2.6 million. However, this loss would be mitigated by corresponding gains on the underlying exposures.

We evaluate the credit quality of potential counterparties to derivative transactions and only enter into contracts with those considered to have minimal credit risk. We periodically monitor changes to counterparty credit quality as well as our concentration of credit exposure to individual counterparties.

We do not use derivative financial instruments for speculative trading purposes, nor do we hedge our foreign currency exposure in a manner that entirely offsets the effects of changes in foreign exchange rates.

As a general rule, we do not use financial instruments to hedge local currency denominated operating expenses in countries where a natural hedge exists. For example, in many countries, revenue from the local currency services substantially offsets the local currency denominated operating expenses.

Interest Rate Risk

Our exposure to interest rate risk results from variable debt outstanding under the revolving credit facility under our Credit Agreement. We pay interest on outstanding borrowings at interest rates that fluctuate based upon changes in various base rates. During the year ended December 31, 2011, we had no debt outstanding under the revolving credit facility.

We have not historically used derivative instruments to manage exposure to changes in interest rates.

Item 8. Financial Statements and Supplementary Data

The financial statements and supplementary data required by this item are located beginning on page 58 and page 39 of this report, respectively.

Item 9. Changes in and Disagreements with Accountants on Accounting and Financial Disclosure

None.

Item 9A. Controls and Procedures

Disclosure Controls and Procedures

Our management, with the participation of our Chief Executive Officer and Chief Financial Officer, has evaluated the effectiveness of our disclosure controls and procedures, as defined in Rules 13a-15(e) and 15d-15(e) of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934, as of December 31, 2011. Based on that evaluation, our Chief Executive Officer and Chief Financial Officer concluded that our disclosure controls and procedures were effective as of December 31, 2011.

Management’s Report on Internal Control Over Financial Reporting

Management is responsible for establishing and maintaining adequate internal control over financial reporting (as defined in Rule 13a-15(f) under the Securities Exchange Act of 1934, as amended). Because of its inherent limitations, internal control over financial reporting may not prevent or detect misstatements. Projections of any evaluation of effectiveness to future periods are subject to the risk that controls may become inadequate because of

 

48


Table of Contents

changes in conditions, or that the degree of compliance with the policies or procedures may deteriorate.

We assessed the effectiveness of our internal control over financial reporting as of December 31, 2011. In making this assessment, we used the criteria established in Internal Control-Integrated Framework issued by the Committee of Sponsoring Organizations of the Treadway Commission. Based on our assessment, management believes that, as of December 31, 2011, our internal control over financial reporting was effective.

Attestation Report of Independent Registered Public Accounting Firm

Our independent registered public accounting firm has issued an attestation report on our internal control over financial reporting. This report appears on page 50.

Changes to Internal Control Over Financial Reporting

There were no changes in our internal control over financial reporting during the quarter ended December 31, 2011 that have materially affected, or are reasonably likely to materially affect, our internal controls over financial reporting.

 

49


Table of Contents

REPORT OF INDEPENDENT REGISTERED PUBLIC ACCOUNTING FIRM

To the Board of Directors and Shareholders of

Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated

Tampa, Florida

We have audited the internal control over financial reporting of Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and subsidiaries (the “Company”) as of December 31, 2011, based on criteria established in Internal Control — Integrated Framework issued by the Committee of Sponsoring Organizations of the Treadway Commission. The Company’s management is responsible for maintaining effective internal control over financial reporting and for its assessment of the effectiveness of internal control over financial reporting, included in the accompanying Management’s Report on Internal Control over Financial Reporting. Our responsibility is to express an opinion on the Company’s internal control over financial reporting based on our audit.

We conducted our audit in accordance with the standards of the Public Company Accounting Oversight Board (United States). Those standards require that we plan and perform the audit to obtain reasonable assurance about whether effective internal control over financial reporting was maintained in all material respects. Our audit included obtaining an understanding of internal control over financial reporting, assessing the risk that a material weakness exists, testing and evaluating the design and operating effectiveness of internal control based on the assessed risk, and performing such other procedures as we considered necessary in the circumstances. We believe that our audit provides a reasonable basis for our opinion.

A company’s internal control over financial reporting is a process designed by, or under the supervision of, the company’s principal executive and principal financial officers, or persons performing similar functions, and effected by the company’s board of directors, management, and other personnel to provide reasonable assurance regarding the reliability of financial reporting and the preparation of financial statements for external purposes in accordance with generally accepted accounting principles. A company’s internal control over financial reporting includes those policies and procedures that (1) pertain to the maintenance of records that, in reasonable detail, accurately and fairly reflect the transactions and dispositions of the assets of the company; (2) provide reasonable assurance that transactions are recorded as necessary to permit preparation of financial statements in accordance with generally accepted accounting principles, and that receipts and expenditures of the company are being made only in accordance with authorizations of management and directors of the company; and (3) provide reasonable assurance regarding prevention or timely detection of unauthorized acquisition, use, or disposition of the company’s assets that could have a material effect on the financial statements.

Because of the inherent limitations of internal control over financial reporting, including the possibility of collusion or improper management override of controls, material misstatements due to error or fraud may not be prevented or detected on a timely basis. Also, projections of any evaluation of the effectiveness of the internal control over financial reporting to future periods are subject to the risk that the controls may become inadequate because of changes in conditions, or that the degree of compliance with the policies or procedures may deteriorate.

In our opinion, the Company maintained, in all material respects, effective internal control over financial reporting as of December 31, 2011, based on the criteria established in Internal Control — Integrated Framework issued by the Committee of Sponsoring Organizations of the Treadway Commission.

We have also audited, in accordance with the standards of the Public Company Accounting Oversight Board (United States), the consolidated financial statements and financial statement schedule as of and for the year ended December 31, 2011 of the Company and our report dated February 29, 2012 expressed an unqualified opinion on those financial statements and financial statement schedule.

/s/ Deloitte & Touche LLP

Certified Public Accountants

Tampa, Florida

February 29, 2012

 

50


Table of Contents

Item 9B. Other Information

None.

PART III

Items 10. through 14.

All information required by Items 10 through 14, with the exception of information on Executive Officers which appears in this report in Item 1 under the caption “Executive Officers”, is incorporated by reference to SYKES’ Proxy Statement for the 2012 Annual Meeting of Shareholders.

 

51


Table of Contents

PART IV

Item 15. Exhibits and Financial Statement Schedules

The following documents are filed as part of this report:

 

  (1)

Consolidated Financial Statements

The Index to Consolidated Financial Statements is set forth on page 57 of this report.

 

  (2)

Financial Statements Schedule

Schedule II — Valuation and Qualifying Accounts is set forth on page 115 of this report.

Other schedules have been omitted because they are not required or applicable or the information is included in the Consolidated Financial Statements or notes thereto.

 

  (3)

Exhibits:

 

  Exhibit

  Number

  Exhibit Description
2.1   Articles of Merger between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated, a North Carolina Corporation, and Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated, a Florida Corporation, dated March 1, 1996. (1)
2.2   Articles of Merger between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and Sykes Realty, Inc. (1)
2.3   Shareholder Agreement dated December 11, 1997, by and among Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and HealthPlan Services Corporation. (2)
2.4   Stock Purchase Agreement, dated September 1, 1998, between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and HealthPlan Services Corporation. (4)
2.5   Merger Agreement, dated as of June 9, 2000, among Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated, SHPS, Incorporated, Welsh Carson Anderson and Stowe, VIII, LP (“WCAS”) and Slugger Acquisition Corp. (9)
2.6   Agreement and Plan of Merger, dated as of October 5, 2009, among ICT Group, Inc., Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated, SH Merger Subsidiary I, Inc., and SH Merger Subsidiary II, LLC (26)
3.1   Articles of Incorporation of Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated, as amended. (5)
3.2   Articles of Amendment to Articles of Incorporation of Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated, as amended. (6)
3.3   Bylaws of Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated, as amended. (17)
4.1   Specimen certificate for the Common Stock of Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated. (1)
10.1   1996 Employee Stock Option Plan. (1)*
10.2   Amended and Restated 1996 Non-Employee Director Stock Option Plan. (10)*
10.3   1996 Non-Employee Directors’ Fee Plan. (1)*
10.4   2004 Non-Employee Directors’ Fee Plan. (15)*
10.5   First Amended and Restated 2004 Non-Employee Director’s Fee Plan. (23)*
10.6   Second Amended and Restated 2004 Non-Employee Director’s Fee Plan. (25)*
10.7   Third Amended and Restated 2004 Non-Employee Director’s Fee Plan. (27)*
10.8   Fourth Amended and Restated 2004 Non-Employee Director Fee Plan. (35)*

 

52


Table of Contents

  Exhibit

  Number

  Exhibit Description
10.9   Form of Split Dollar Plan Documents. (1)*
10.10   Form of Split Dollar Agreement. (1)*
10.11   Form of Indemnity Agreement between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and directors & executive officers. (1)
10.12   1997 Management Stock Incentive Plan. (3)*
10.13   1999 Employees’ Stock Purchase Plan. (7)*
10.14   2000 Stock Option Plan. (8)*
10.15   2001 Equity Incentive Plan. (11)*
10.16   Deferred Compensation Plan. (17)*
10.17   2004 Non-Employee Director Stock Option Plan. (14)*
10.18   Form of Restricted Share And Stock Appreciation Right Award Agreement dated as of March 29, 2006. (18)*
10.19   Form of Restricted Share And Bonus Award Agreement dated as of March 29, 2006. (18)*
10.20   Form of Restricted Share Award Agreement dated as of May 24, 2006. (19)*
10.21   Form of Restricted Share And Stock Appreciation Right Award Agreement dated as of January 2, 2007. (21)*
10.22   Form of Restricted Share Award Agreement dated as of January 2, 2007. (21)*
10.23   Form of Restricted Share and Stock Appreciation Right Award Agreement dated as of January 2, 2008. (22)*
10.24   2011 Equity Incentive Plan. (36)*
10.25   Founder’s Retirement and Consulting Agreement dated December 10, 2004 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and John H. Sykes. (16)*
10.26   Amended and Restated Employment Agreement dated as of December 30, 2008 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and Charles E. Sykes. (28)*
10.27   Stock Option Agreement dated as of March 15, 2002 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and Charles E. Sykes. (13)*
10.28   Stock Option Agreement (Performance Accelerated Option) dated as of March 15, 2002 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and Charles E. Sykes. (13)*
10.29   Amended and Restated Employment Agreement dated as of December 30, 2008 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and W. Michael Kipphut. (28)*
10.30   Stock Option Agreement dated as of October 1, 2001, between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and W. Michael Kipphut. (12)*
10.31   Amended and Restated Employment Agreement dated as of December 29, 2008 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and Jenna R. Nelson. (28)*
10.32   Stock Option Agreement dated as of March 11, 2002 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and Jenna R. Nelson. (13)*
10.33   Stock Option Agreement dated as of October 1, 2001, between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and James T. Holder. (12)*

 

53


Table of Contents

  Exhibit

  Number

  Exhibit Description
10.34   Amended and Restated Employment Agreement dated as of December 29, 2008 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and James T. Holder. (28)*
10.35   Amended and Restated Employment Agreement dated as of December 29, 2008 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and William N. Rocktoff. (28)*
10.36   Stock Option Agreement dated as of March 18, 2002 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and William Rocktoff. (13)*
10.37   Stock Option Agreement dated as of March 18, 2002 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and William Rocktoff. (13)*
10.38   Amended and Restated Employment Agreement dated as of December 29, 2008 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and James Hobby, Jr. (28)*
10.39   Amended and Restated Employment Agreement dated as of December 29, 2008 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and Daniel L. Hernandez. (28)*
10.40   Amended and Restated Employment Agreement dated as of December 29, 2008 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and David L. Pearson. (28)*
10.41   Amended and Restated Employment Agreement, dated as of December 29, 2008 between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and Lawrence R. Zingale. (28)*
10.42   Credit Agreement, dated March 30, 2009, between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated, the lenders party thereto and KeyBank National Association, as Lead Arranger, Sole Book Runner and Administrative Agent (29)
10.43   First Amendment Agreement, dated as of December 11, 2009, to Credit Agreement, dated March 30, 2009, between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated, the lenders party thereto and KeyBank National Association, as Lead Arranger, Sole Book Runner and Administrative Agent (30)
10.44   Credit Agreement between Sykes (Bermuda) Holdings Limited and KeyBank National Association, dated December 11, 2009 (30)
10.45   Guaranty of Payment of Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated in favor of KeyBank National Association, dated December 11, 2009 (30)
10.46   Credit Agreement, dated February 2, 2010, between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated, the lenders party thereto and KeyBank National Association, as Lead Arranger, Sole Book Runner and Administrative Agent (31)
10.47   First Amendment Agreement, dated April 23, 2010, to Credit Agreement, dated February 2, 2010, between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated, the lenders party thereto and KeyBank National Association, as Lead Arranger, Sole Book Runner and Administrative Agent. (32)
10.48   Second Amendment Agreement, dated July 16, 2010, to Credit Agreement, dated February 2, 2010, between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated, the lenders party thereto and KeyBank National Association, as Lead Arranger, Sole Book Runner and Administrative Agent. (32)
10.49   Lease Agreement, dated January 25, 2008, Lease Amendment Number One and Lease Amendment Number Two dated February 12, 2008 and May 28, 2008 respectively, between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and Kingstree Office One, LLC. (24)
10.50   Continuing Services Agreement between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and JHS Equity, LLC, dated May 28, 2008. (24)

 

54


Table of Contents

  Exhibit

  Number

  Exhibit Description

10.51

  Stock Purchase Agreement between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated (not as a Seller), SEI International Services S.a.r.l. (as Seller), Sykes Enterprises Incorporated Holdings, BV (as Seller) and Antonio Marcelo Cid, Humberto Daniel Sahade as Buyers, dated December 13, 2010. (33)

10.52

  Stock Purchase Agreement between Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated (not as a Seller), ICT Group Netherlands B.V. (as Seller), ICT Group Netherlands Holdings, B.V. (as Seller) and Carolina Gaito, Claudio Martin, Fernando A. Berrondo, Gustavo Rosetti as Buyers, dated December 24, 2010. (34)

14.1

  Code of Ethics. (37)

21.1

  List of subsidiaries of Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated.

23.1

  Consent of Independent Registered Public Accounting Firm.

24.1

  Power of Attorney relating to subsequent amendments (included on the signature page of this report).

31.1

  Certification of Chief Executive Officer, pursuant to Rule 13a-14(a).

31.2

  Certification of Chief Financial Officer, pursuant to Rule 13a-14(a).

32.1

  Certification of Chief Executive Officer, pursuant to Section 1350.

32.2

  Certification of Chief Financial Officer, pursuant to Section 1350.

101.INS

  XBRL Instance Document (38)

101.SCH

  XBRL Taxonomy Extension Schema Document (38)

101.CAL

  XBRL Taxonomy Extension Calculation Linkbase Document ( 38)

101.LAB

  XBRL Taxonomy Extension Label Linkbase Document ( 38)

101.PRE

  XBRL Taxonomy Extension Presentation Linkbase Document ( 38)

101.DEF

  XBRL Taxonomy Extension Definition Linkbase Document ( 38)

*

  Indicates management contract or compensatory plan or arrangement.

(1)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Registration Statement on Form S-1 (Registration No. 333-2324) and incorporated herein by reference.

(2)

  Filed as Exhibit 2.12 to the Registrant’s Form 10-K filed with the Commission on March 16, 1998, and incorporated herein by reference.

(3)

  Filed as Exhibit 10.14 to the Registrant’s Form 10-Q filed with the Commission on July 28, 1998, and incorporated herein by reference.

(4)

  Filed as Exhibit 2.1 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on September 25, 1998, and incorporated herein by reference.

(5)

  Filed as Exhibit 3.1 to the Registrant’s Registration Statement on Form S-3 filed with the Commission on October 23, 1997, and incorporated herein by reference.

(6)

  Filed as Exhibit 3.2 to the Registrant’s Form 10-K filed with the Commission on March 29, 1999, and incorporated herein by reference.

(7)

  Filed as Exhibit 10.19 to the Registrant’s Form 10-K filed with the Commission on March 29, 1999, and incorporated herein by reference.

(8)

  Filed as Exhibit 10.23 to the Registrant’s Form 10-K filed with the Commission on March 29, 2000, and incorporated herein by reference.

(9)

  Filed as Exhibit 2.1 to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on July 17, 2000, and incorporated herein by reference.

(10)

  Filed as Exhibit 10.12 to Registrant’s Form 10-Q filed with the Commission on May 7, 2001, and incorporated herein by reference.

 

55


Table of Contents

(11)

  Filed as Exhibit 10.32 to Registrant’s Form 10-Q filed with the Commission on May 7, 2001, and incorporated herein by reference.

(12)

  Filed as an Exhibit to Registrant’s Form 10-K filed with the Commission on March 19, 2002, and incorporated herein by reference.

(13)

  Filed as an Exhibit to Registrant’s Form 10-Q filed with the Commission on May 10, 2002, and incorporated herein by reference.

(14)

  Filed as an Exhibit to Registrant’s Proxy Statement for the 2004 annual meeting of shareholders filed with the Commission April 6, 2004.

(15)

  Filed as an Exhibit to Registrant’s Form 10-Q filed with the Commission on August 9, 2004, and incorporated herein by reference.

(16)

  Filed as an Exhibit to Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on December 16, 2004, and incorporated herein by reference.

(17)

  Filed as an Exhibit to Registrant’s Form 10-K filed with the Commission on March 22, 2005, and incorporated herein by reference.

(18)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on April 4, 2006, and incorporated herein by reference.

(19)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on May 31, 2006, and incorporated herein by reference.

(20)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on July 10, 2006, and incorporated herein by reference.

(21)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on December 28, 2006, and incorporated herein by reference.

(22)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on January 8, 2008, and incorporated herein by reference.

(23)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Form 10-Q filed with the Commission on May 7, 2008, and incorporated herein by reference.

(24)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on May 29, 2008, and incorporated herein by reference.

(25)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Form 10-Q filed with the Commission on November 5, 2008, and incorporated herein by reference.

(26)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on October 9, 2009, and incorporated herein by reference.

(27)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Proxy Statement for the 2009 annual meeting of shareholders filed with the Commission on April 22, 2009, and incorporated herein by reference.

(28)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Annual Report on Form 10-K filed with the Commission on March 10, 2009, and incorporated herein by reference.

(29)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on April 1, 2009, and incorporated herein by reference.

(30)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on December 14, 2009, and incorporated herein by reference.

(31)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on February 2, 2010, and incorporated herein by reference.

(32)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Quarterly Report on Form 10-Q filed with the Commission on August 4, 2010, and incorporated herein by reference.

(33)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on December 22, 2010, and incorporated herein by reference.

(34)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Current Report on Form 8-K filed with the Commission on December 30, 2010, and incorporated herein by reference.

(35)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Quarterly Report on Form 10-Q filed with the Commission on August 9, 2011, and incorporated herein by reference.

(36)

  Filed as an Exhibit to the Registrant’s Quarterly Report on Form 10-Q filed with the Commission on November 8, 2011, and incorporated herein by reference.

(37)

  Available on the Registrant’s website at www.sykes.com, by clicking on “Investor Relations” and then “Corporate Governance” under the heading “Corporate Governance.”

(38)

  Filed herewith.

 

56


Table of Contents

Signatures

Pursuant to the requirements of Section 13 or 15(d) of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934, the Registrant has duly caused this report to be signed on its behalf by the undersigned, thereunto duly authorized, in the City of Tampa, and State of Florida, on this 29th day of February 2012.

 

SYKES ENTERPRISES, INCORPORATED

(Registrant)

By:

 

/s/ W. Michael Kipphut

 

W. Michael Kipphut,

 

Executive Vice President and Chief Financial Officer

(Principal Financial and Accounting Officer)

Pursuant to the requirements of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934, this report has been signed below by the following persons on behalf of the Registrant and in the capacities and on the dates indicated. Each person whose signature appears below constitutes and appoints W. Michael Kipphut his true and lawful attorney-in-fact and agent, with full power of substitution and revocation, for him and in his name, place and stead, in any and all capacities, to sign any and all amendments to this report and to file the same, with all exhibits thereto, and other documents in connection therewith, with the Securities and Exchange Commission, granting unto said attorney-in-fact and agents, and each of them, full power and authority to do and perform each and every act and thing requisite and necessary to be done in connection therewith, as fully to all intents and purposes as he might or should do in person, thereby ratifying and confirming all that said attorneys-in-fact and agents, or either of them, may lawfully do or cause to be done by virtue hereof.

 

Signature    Title   Date

/s/ Paul L. Whiting

  

Chairman of the Board

 

February 29, 2012

Paul L. Whiting

    

/s/ Charles E. Sykes

  

President and Chief Executive Officer and

 

February 29, 2012

Charles E. Sykes

  

Director (Principal Executive Officer)

 

/s/ Furman P. Bodenheimer, Jr.

  

Director

 

February 29, 2012

Furman P. Bodenheimer, Jr.

    

/s/ Mark C. Bozek

  

Director

 

February 29, 2012

Mark C. Bozek

    

/s/ Lt. Gen. Michael P. Delong (Ret.)

  

Director

 

February 29, 2012

Lt. Gen. Michael P. Delong (Ret.)

    

/s/ H. Parks Helms

  

Director

 

February 29, 2012

H. Parks Helms

    

/s/ Iain A. Macdonald

  

Director

 

February 29, 2012

Iain A. Macdonald

    

/s/ James S. MacLeod

  

Director

 

February 29, 2012

James S. MacLeod

    

/s/ Linda F. McClintock-Greco M.D.

  

Director

 

February 29, 2012

Linda F. McClintock-Greco M.D.

    

/s/ William J. Meurer

  

Director

 

February 29, 2012

William J. Meurer

    

/s/ James K. Murray, Jr.

  

Director

 

February 29, 2012

James K. Murray, Jr.

    

/s/ W. Michael Kipphut

  

Executive Vice President and Chief Financial Officer

 

February 29, 2012

W. Michael Kipphut

  

(Principal Financial and Accounting Officer)

 

 

57


Table of Contents

Table of Contents

 

    Page No.

Report of Independent Registered Public Accounting Firm

  59

Consolidated Balance Sheets as of December 31, 2011 and 2010

  60

Consolidated Statements of Operations for the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009

  61

Consolidated Statements of Changes in Shareholders’ Equity for the years ended December  31, 2011, 2010 and 2009

  62

Consolidated Statements of Cash Flows for the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009

  63

Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements

  65

 

58


Table of Contents

REPORT OF INDEPENDENT REGISTERED PUBLIC ACCOUNTING FIRM

To the Board of Directors and Shareholders of

Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated

Tampa, Florida

We have audited the accompanying consolidated balance sheets of Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and subsidiaries (the “Company”) as of December 31, 2011 and 2010, and the related consolidated statements of operations, changes in shareholders’ equity, and cash flows for each of the three years in the period ended December 31, 2011. Our audits also included the financial statement schedule listed in the Index at Item 15. These financial statements and financial statement schedule are the responsibility of the Company’s management. Our responsibility is to express an opinion on the financial statements and financial statement schedule based on our audits.

We conducted our audits in accordance with the standards of the Public Company Accounting Oversight Board (United States). Those standards require that we plan and perform the audit to obtain reasonable assurance about whether the financial statements are free of material misstatement. An audit includes examining, on a test basis, evidence supporting the amounts and disclosures in the financial statements. An audit also includes assessing the accounting principles used and significant estimates made by management, as well as evaluating the overall financial statement presentation. We believe that our audits provide a reasonable basis for our opinion.

In our opinion, such consolidated financial statements present fairly, in all material respects, the financial position of Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and subsidiaries as of December 31, 2011 and 2010, and the results of their operations and their cash flows for each of the three years in the period ended December 31, 2011, in conformity with accounting principles generally accepted in the United States of America. Also, in our opinion, such financial statement schedule, when considered in relation to the basic consolidated financial statements taken as a whole, presents fairly, in all material respects, the information set forth therein.

We have also audited, in accordance with the standards of the Public Company Accounting Oversight Board (United States), the Company’s internal control over financial reporting as of December 31, 2011, based on the criteria established in Internal Control—Integrated Framework issued by the Committee of Sponsoring Organizations of the Treadway Commission and our report dated February 29, 2012 expressed an unqualified opinion on the Company’s internal control over financial reporting.

/s/ Deloitte & Touche LLP

Certified Public Accountants

Tampa, Florida

February 29, 2012

 

59


Table of Contents

SYKES ENTERPRISES, INCORPORATED AND SUBSIDIARIES

Consolidated Balance Sheets

 

(in thousands, except per share data)   December 31, 2011     December 31, 2010  

Assets

   

Current assets:

   

Cash and cash equivalents

    $ 211,122         $ 189,829    

Receivables, net

    229,702         248,842    

Prepaid expenses

    11,540         10,704    

Other current assets

    20,120         22,913    

Assets held for sale, discontinued operations

    9,590           
 

 

 

   

 

 

 

Total current assets

    482,074         472,288    

Property and equipment, net

    91,080         113,703    

Goodwill

    121,342         122,303    

Intangibles, net

    44,472         52,752    

Deferred charges and other assets

    30,162         33,554    
 

 

 

   

 

 

 
    $ 769,130         $ 794,600    
 

 

 

   

 

 

 

Liabilities and Shareholders’ Equity

   

Current liabilities:

   

Accounts payable

    $ 23,109         $ 30,635    

Accrued employee compensation and benefits

    62,452         65,267    

Current deferred income tax liabilities

    663         3,347    

Income taxes payable

    423         2,605    

Deferred revenue

    34,319         31,255    

Other accrued expenses and current liabilities

    21,191         25,621    

Liabilities held for sale, discontinued operations

    7,128           
 

 

 

   

 

 

 

Total current liabilities

    149,285         158,730    

Deferred grants

    8,563         10,807    

Long-term income tax liabilities

    26,475         28,876    

Other long-term liabilities

    11,241         12,992    
 

 

 

   

 

 

 

Total liabilities

    195,564         211,405    
 

 

 

   

 

 

 

Commitments and loss contingency (Note 24)

   

Shareholders’ equity:

   

Preferred stock, $0.01 par value, 10,000 shares authorized; no shares issued and outstanding

             

Common stock, $0.01 par value, 200,000 shares authorized; 44,306 and 47,066 shares issued, respectively

    443         471    

Additional paid-in capital

    281,157         302,911    

Retained earnings

    291,803         265,676    

Accumulated other comprehensive income

    4,436         15,108    

Treasury stock at cost: 299 shares and 81 shares, respectively

    (4,273)        (971)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

 

Total shareholders’ equity

    573,566         583,195    
 

 

 

   

 

 

 
    $ 769,130         $ 794,600    
 

 

 

   

 

 

 

See accompanying Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements.

 

60


Table of Contents

SYKES ENTERPRISES, INCORPORATED AND SUBSIDIARIES

Consolidated Statements of Operations

 

     Years Ended December 31,  
(in thousands, except per share data)    2011      2010      2009  

Revenues

     $   1,169,267          $   1,121,911          $   769,353    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Operating expenses:

        

Direct salaries and related costs

     763,930          715,571          481,823    

General and administrative

     341,586          366,565          214,255    

Net (gain) loss on disposal of property and equipment

     (3,021)         143          195    

Net (gain) on insurance settlement

     (481)         (1,991)           

Impairment of goodwill and intangibles

             362          1,908    

Impairment of long-lived assets

     1,718          3,280            
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total operating expenses

     1,103,732          1,083,930          698,181    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Income from continuing operations

     65,535          37,981          71,172    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Other income (expense):

        

Interest income

     1,352          1,201          2,287    

Interest (expense)

     (1,132)         (4,963)         (302)   

Impairment (loss) on investment in SHPS

                     (2,089)   

Other (expense)

     (2,099)         (5,907)         (283)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total other income (expense)

     (1,879)         (9,669)         (387)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Income from continuing operations before income taxes

     63,656          28,312          70,785    

Income taxes

     11,342          2,197          26,118    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Income from continuing operations, net of taxes

     52,314          26,115          44,667    

(Loss) from discontinued operations, net of taxes

     (4,532)         (12,893)         (1,456)   

Gain (loss) on sale of discontinued operations, net of taxes

     559          (23,495)           
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net income (loss)

     $ 48,341          $ (10,273)         $ 43,211    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net income (loss) per share common share:

        

Basic:

        

Continuing operations

     $ 1.15          $ 0.57          $ 1.10    

Discontinued operations

     (0.09)         (0.79)         (0.04)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net income (loss) per common share

     $ 1.06          $ (0.22)         $ 1.06    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Diluted:

        

Continuing operations

     $ 1.15          $ 0.57          $ 1.09    

Discontinued operations

     (0.09)         (0.79)         (0.04)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net income (loss) per common share

     $ 1.06          $ (0.22)         $ 1.05    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Weighted average shares:

        

Basic

     45,506          46,030          40,707    

Diluted

     45,607          46,133          41,026    

See accompanying Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements.

 

61


Table of Contents

SYKES ENTERPRISES, INCORPORATED AND SUBSIDIARIES

Consolidated Statements of Changes in Shareholders’ Equity

 

(in thousands)   Common Stock    

Additional

Paid-in
Capital

   

Retained  
Earnings  

   

Accumulated

Other

Comprehensive
Income (Loss)

   

Treasury
Stock

   

    Total    

 
           
    Shares 
  Issued 
    Amount             
 

 

 

 

Balance at January 1, 2009

    41,271       $ 413       $ 158,216       $ 237,188       $ (10,683)      $ (1,104)      $ 384,030    

Issuance of common stock

    291                3,166         -            -            -            3,168    

Stock-based compensation expense

    -            -            5,158         -            -            -            5,158    

Excess tax benefit from stock-based compensation

    -            -            878         -            -            -            878    

Vesting of common stock and restricted stock under equity award plans

    255                (904)        -            -            (179)        (1,080)   

Repurchase of common stock

    -            -            -            -            -            (3,193)        (3,193)   

Comprehensive income

    -            -            -            43,211         18,502         -            61,713    
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Balance at December 31, 2009

    41,817         418         166,514         280,399         7,819         (4,476)        450,674    

Issuance of common stock

           -            37         -            -            -            37    

Stock-based compensation expense

    -            -            4,935         -            -            -            4,935    

Excess tax benefit from stock-based compensation

    -            -            354         -            -            -            354    

Vesting of common stock and restricted stock under equity award plans

    204                (1,083)        -            -            (201)        (1,282)   

Repurchase of common stock

    -            -            -            -            -            (5,212)        (5,212)   

Retirement of treasury stock

    (558)        (6)        (4,462)        (4,450)        -            8,918         -       

Issuance of common stock for business acquisition

    5,601         57         136,616         -            -            -            136,673    

Comprehensive income (loss)

    -            -            -            (10,273)        7,289         -            (2,984)   
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Balance at December 31, 2010

    47,066         471         302,911         265,676         15,108         (971)        583,195    

Issuance of common stock

    33         -            311         -            -            -            311    

Stock-based compensation expense

    -            -            3,582         -            -            -            3,582    

Excess tax (provision) from stock-based compensation

    -            -            (8)        -            -            -            (8)   

Vesting of common stock and restricted stock under equity award plans

    293                (979)        -            -            (214)        (1,190)   

Repurchase of common stock

    -            -            -            -            -            (49,993)        (49,993)   

Retirement of treasury stock

    (3,086)        (31)        (24,660)        (22,214)        -            46,905         -       

Comprehensive income (loss)

    -            -            -            48,341         (10,672)        -            37,669    
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Balance at December 31, 2011

    44,306       $ 443       $ 281,157       $ 291,803       $ 4,436       $ (4,273)      $ 573,566    
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

See accompanying Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements.

 

62


Table of Contents

SYKES ENTERPRISES, INCORPORATED AND SUBSIDIARIES

Consolidated Statements of Cash Flows

 

     Years Ended December 31,  
(in thousands)            2011                      2010                      2009          

Cash flows from operating activities:

        

Net income (loss)

     $ 48,341          $ (10,273)         $ 43,211    

Adjustments to reconcile net income (loss) to net cash provided by operating activities:

        

Depreciation and amortization, net

     53,467          57,932          28,323    

Impairment losses

     2,561          4,324          3,997    

Unrealized foreign currency transaction (gains) losses, net

     1,216          (4,918)         4,372    

Stock-based compensation expense

     3,582          4,935          5,158    

Excess tax (benefit) provision from stock-based compensation

             (354)         (878)   

Deferred income tax (benefit) provision

     (3,955)         (17,142)         10,165    

Net (gain) loss on disposal of property and equipment

     (3,035)         232          197    

Bad debt expense

     532          170          1,022    

Unrealized (gains) losses on financial instruments, net

     4,138          (1,479)         (437)   

(Recovery) of regulatory penalties

     (407)         (418)         -      

Increase (decrease) in valuation allowance on deferred tax assets

     -            102          (5,807)   

Amortization of deferred loan fees

     585          2,918          268    

Net (gain) on insurance settlement

     (481)         (1,991)         -      

(Gain) loss on sale of discontinued operations

     (559)         29,901          -      

Other

     773          326          441    

Changes in assets and liabilities, net of acquisition:

        

Receivables

     8,927          (10,716)         (9,262)   

Prepaid expenses

     (1,042)         3,465          (719)   

Other current assets

     (3,442)         (4,797)         46    

Deferred charges and other assets

     1,630          2,740          (2,045)   

Accounts payable

     (6,898)         (2,174)         (2,186)   

Income taxes receivable / payable

     (4,529)         (6,180)         6,462    

Accrued employee compensation and benefits

     2,450          (6,601)         2,654    

Other accrued expenses and current liabilities

     (2,855)         9,329          1,336    

Deferred revenue

     4,243          258          (679)   

Other long-term liabilities

     (2,636)         (4,527)         1,973    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net cash provided by operating activities

     102,614          45,062          87,612    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Cash flows from investing activities:

        

Capital expenditures

     (29,890)         (28,516)         (30,277)   

Cash paid for business acquisition, net of cash acquired

     -            (77,174)         -      

Proceeds from sale of property and equipment

     3,973          49          216    

Investment in restricted cash

     (494)         (187)         (80,002)   

Release of restricted cash

     396          80,000          839    

Cash divested on sale of discontinued operations

     -            (14,462)         -      

Proceeds from insurance settlement

     1,654          1,991          -      
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net cash (used for) investing activities

     (24,361)         (38,299)         (109,224)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

63


Table of Contents

SYKES ENTERPRISES, INCORPORATED AND SUBSIDIARIES

Consolidated Statements of Cash Flows

(Continued)

 

     Years Ended December 31,  
(in thousands)    2011      2010      2009  

Cash flows from financing activities:

        

Payment of long-term debt

     -            (75,000)         -      

Proceeds from issuance of long-term debt

     -            75,000          -      

Proceeds from issuance of stock

     311          37          3,168    

Excess tax benefit (provision) from stock-based compensation

     (8)         354          878    

Cash paid for repurchase of common stock

     (49,993)         (5,212)         (3,193)   

Proceeds from (refunds of) grants

     (225)         148          3,491    

Proceeds from short-term debt

     -            -            75,000    

Payments on short-term debt

     -            (85,000)         -      

Shares repurchased for minimum tax withholding on equity awards

     (1,190)         (1,282)         (1,080)   

Cash paid for loan fees related to debt

     -            (3,035)         (1,427)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net cash (used for) provided by financing activities

     (51,105)         (93,990)         76,837    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Effects of exchange rates on cash

     (5,855)         (2,797)         5,578    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net increase (decrease) in cash and cash equivalents

     21,293          (90,024)         60,803    

Cash and cash equivalents – beginning

     189,829          279,853          219,050    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Cash and cash equivalents – ending

     $       211,122          $       189,829          $       279,853    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Supplemental disclosures of cash flow information:

        

Cash paid during period for interest

     $ 1,065          $ 2,924          $ 1,008    

Cash paid during period for income taxes

     $ 24,631          $ 20,577          $ 14,660    

Non-cash transactions:

        

Property and equipment additions in accounts payable

     $ 2,434          $ 2,317          $ 1,612    

Unrealized gain on postretirement obligation in accumulated other comprehensive income (loss)

     $ 113          $ 70          $ 276    

Issuance of common stock for business acquisition

     $ -            $ 136,673          $ -      

See accompanying Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements.

 

64


Table of Contents

SYKES ENTERPRISES, INCORPORATED AND SUBSIDIARIES

Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements

Note 1. Overview and Summary of Significant Accounting Policies

Business Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated and consolidated subsidiaries (“SYKES” or the “Company”) provides outsourced customer contact management solutions and services in the business process outsourcing arena to companies, primarily within the communications, financial services, technology/consumer, transportation and leisure, healthcare and other industries. SYKES provides flexible, high-quality outsourced customer contact management services (with an emphasis on inbound technical support and customer service), which includes customer assistance, healthcare and roadside assistance, technical support and product sales to its clients’ customers. Utilizing SYKES’ integrated onshore/offshore global delivery model, SYKES provides its services through multiple communication channels encompassing phone, e-mail, Internet, text messaging and chat. SYKES complements its outsourced customer contact management services with various enterprise support services in the United States that encompass services for a company’s internal support operations, from technical staffing services to outsourced corporate help desk services. In Europe, SYKES also provides fulfillment services including multilingual sales order processing via the Internet and phone, payment processing, inventory control, product delivery and product returns handling. The Company has operations in two reportable segments entitled (1) the Americas, which includes the United States, Canada, Latin America, India and the Asia Pacific Rim, in which the client base is primarily companies in the United States that are using the Company’s services to support their customer management needs; and (2) EMEA, which includes Europe, the Middle East and Africa.

AcquisitionOn February 2, 2010, the Company completed the acquisition of ICT Group, Inc. (“ICT”), pursuant to the Agreement and Plan of Merger, dated October 5, 2009. The Company has reflected the operating results in the Consolidated Statement of Operations since February 2, 2010. See Note 2, Acquisition of ICT, for additional information on the acquisition of this business.

Discontinued Operations — In November 2011, the Company, authorized by the Finance Committee of the Company’s Board of Directors, decided to pursue a buyer for its operations located in Spain (“Spanish operations”) as these operations are no longer consistent with the Company’s strategic direction. These operations met the held for sale criteria as of December 31, 2011, therefore, the Company reflected the assets and liabilities of the Spanish operations as “Assets held for sale, discontinued operations” and “Liabilities held for sale, discontinued operations” in the accompanying Balance Sheet as of December 31, 2011. The Company reflected the operating results related to the Spanish operations as discontinued operations in the Consolidated Statements of Operations for the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009. Cash flows from discontinued operations are included in the Consolidated Statements of Cash Flows for the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009. See Note 3, Discontinued Operations, for additional information on the plan to sell the Spanish operations.

In December 2010, the Company sold its Argentine operations, pursuant to stock purchase agreements, dated December 16, 2010 and December 29, 2010. The Company reflected the operating results related to the Argentine operations as discontinued operations in the Consolidated Statements of Operations for the years ended December 31, 2010 and 2009. Cash flows from discontinued operations are included in the Consolidated Statements of Cash Flows for the years ended December 31, 2010 and 2009. See Note 3, Discontinued Operations, for additional information on the sale of the Argentine operations.

Principles of Consolidation The Consolidated Financial Statements include the accounts of SYKES and its wholly-owned subsidiaries and controlled majority-owned subsidiaries. All significant intercompany transactions and balances have been eliminated in consolidation.

Use of Estimates The preparation of consolidated financial statements in conformity with accounting principles generally accepted in the United States of America requires the Company to make estimates and assumptions that affect the reported amounts of assets and liabilities and disclosure of contingent assets and liabilities at the date of the financial statements and the reported amounts of revenues and expenses during the reporting period. Actual results could differ from those estimates.

 

65


Table of Contents

Subsequent Events — Subsequent events or transactions have been evaluated through the date and time of issuance of the consolidated financial statements. There were no material subsequent events that required recognition or disclosure in the Consolidated Financial Statements.

Recognition of Revenue We recognize revenue in accordance with ASC 605 “Revenue Recognition”. We primarily recognize revenues from services as the services are performed, which is based on either a per minute, per call or per transaction basis, under a fully executed contractual agreement and record reductions to revenues for contractual penalties and holdbacks for failure to meet specified minimum service levels and other performance based contingencies. Revenue recognition is limited to the amount that is not contingent upon delivery of any future product or service or meeting other specified performance conditions.

Product sales, accounted for within our fulfillment services, are recognized upon shipment to the customer and satisfaction of all obligations.

In accordance with ASC 605-25 (“ASC 605-25”) “Revenue Recognition – Multiple-Element Arrangements”, revenue from contracts with multiple-deliverables is allocated to separate units of accounting based on their relative fair value, if the deliverables in the contract(s) meet the criteria for such treatment. Certain fulfillment services contracts contain multiple-deliverables. Separation criteria includes whether a delivered item has value to the customer on a stand-alone basis, whether there is objective and reliable evidence of the fair value of the undelivered items and, if the arrangement includes a general right of return related to a delivered item, whether delivery of the undelivered item is considered probable and in our control. Fair value is the price of a deliverable when it is regularly sold on a stand-alone basis, which generally consists of vendor-specific objective evidence of fair value. If there is no evidence of the fair value for a delivered product or service, revenue is allocated first to the fair value of the undelivered product or service and then the residual revenue is allocated to the delivered product or service. If there is no evidence of the fair value for an undelivered product or service, the contract(s) is accounted for as a single unit of accounting, resulting in delay of revenue recognition for the delivered product or service until the undelivered product or service portion of the contract is complete. We recognize revenues for delivered elements only when the fair values of undelivered elements are known, uncertainties regarding client acceptance are resolved, and there are no client-negotiated refund or return rights affecting the revenue recognized for delivered elements. Once we determine the allocation of revenues between deliverable elements, there are no further changes in the revenue allocation. If the separation criteria are met, revenues from these services are recognized as the services are performed under a fully executed contractual agreement. If the separation criteria are not met because there is insufficient evidence to determine fair value of one of the deliverables, all of the services are accounted for as a single combined unit of accounting. For deliverables with insufficient evidence to determine fair value, revenue is recognized on the proportional performance method using the straight-line basis over the contract period, or the actual number of operational seats used to serve the client, as appropriate. As of December 31, 2011, our fulfillment contracts with multiple-deliverables met the separation criteria as outlined in ASC 605-25 and the revenue was accounted for accordingly. We have no other contracts that contain multiple-deliverables as of December 31, 2011.

In October 2009, the Financial Accounting Standards Board amended the accounting standards for certain multiple-deliverable revenue arrangements. We adopted this guidance on a prospective basis for applicable transactions originated or materially modified since January 1, 2011, the adoption date. Since there were no such transactions executed or materially modified since adoption on January 1, 2011, there was no impact on our financial condition, results of operations and cash flows. The amended standard:

 

   

updates guidance on whether multiple deliverables exist, how the deliverables in an arrangement should be separated, and how the consideration should be allocated;

   

requires an entity to allocate revenue in an arrangement using the best estimated selling price of deliverables if a vendor does not have vendor-specific objective evidence of selling price or third-party evidence of selling price; and

   

eliminates the use of the residual method and requires an entity to allocate revenue using the relative selling price method.

Cash and Cash Equivalents Cash and cash equivalents consist of cash and highly liquid short-term investments. Cash in the amount of $211.1 million and $189.8 million at December 31, 2011 and 2010, respectively, was primarily held in interest bearing investments, which have original maturities of less than 90 days. Cash and cash equivalents of $163.9 million and $173.9 million at December 31, 2011 and 2010, respectively, were held in international operations and may be subject to additional taxes if repatriated to the United States.

 

66


Table of Contents

Restricted Cash — Restricted cash includes cash whereby the Company’s ability to use the funds at any time is contractually limited or is generally designated for specific purposes arising out of certain contractual or other obligations. Restricted cash is included in “Other current assets” and “Deferred charges and other assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets.

Allowance for Doubtful Accounts The Company maintains allowances for doubtful accounts on trade account receivables for estimated losses arising from the inability of its customers to make required payments. The Company’s estimate is based on factors surrounding the credit risk of certain clients, historical collection experience and a review of the current status of trade accounts receivable. It is reasonably possible that the Company’s estimate of the allowance for doubtful accounts will change if the financial condition of the Company’s customers were to deteriorate, resulting in a reduced ability to make payments.

Assets and Liabilities Held for Sale The Company classifies its assets and related liabilities as held for sale when management commits to a plan to sell the assets, the assets are ready for immediate sale in their present condition, an active program to locate buyers and other actions required to complete the plan to sell the assets has been initiated, the sale of the assets is probable and expected to be completed within one year, the assets are marketed at reasonable prices in relation to their fair value and it is unlikely that significant changes will be made to the plan to sell the assets.

The Company measures the value of assets held for sale at the lower of the carrying amount or fair value, less costs to sell. Assets and the related liabilities held for sale in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet as of December 31, 2011 pertain to the applicable assets and liabilities of the Company’s Spanish operations. See Note 3, Discontinued Operations, for additional information.

Property and Equipment Property and equipment is recorded at cost and depreciated using the straight-line method over the estimated useful lives of the respective assets. Improvements to leased premises are amortized over the shorter of the related lease term or the estimated useful lives of the improvements. Cost and related accumulated depreciation on assets retired or disposed of are removed from the accounts and any resulting gains or losses are credited or charged to income. The Company capitalizes certain costs incurred, if any, to internally develop software upon the establishment of technological feasibility. Costs incurred prior to the establishment of technological feasibility are expensed as incurred.

The carrying value of property and equipment to be held and used is evaluated for impairment whenever events or changes in circumstances indicate that the carrying amount may not be recoverable in accordance with ASC 360 “Property, Plant and Equipment.” For purposes of recognition and measurement of an impairment loss, assets are grouped at the lowest levels for which there are identifiable cash flows (the “reporting unit”). An asset is considered to be impaired when the sum of the undiscounted future net cash flows expected to result from the use of the asset and its eventual disposition does not exceed its carrying amount. The amount of the impairment loss, if any, is measured as the amount by which the carrying value of the asset exceeds its estimated fair value, which is generally determined based on appraisals or sales prices of comparable assets. Occasionally, the Company redeploys property and equipment from under-utilized centers to other locations to improve capacity utilization if it is determined that the related undiscounted future cash flows in the under-utilized centers would not be sufficient to recover the carrying amount of these assets. Except as discussed in Note 5, Fair Value, the Company determined that its property and equipment were not impaired as of December 31, 2011.

Rent Expense The Company has entered into operating lease agreements, some of which contain provisions for future rent increases, rent free periods, or periods in which rent payments are reduced. The total amount of the rental payments due over the lease term is being charged to rent expense on the straight-line method over the term of the lease in accordance with ASC 840 “Leases.

Investment in SHPS The Company held a noncontrolling interest in SHPS, Inc. (“SHPS”), which was accounted for at cost of approximately $2.1 million as of December 31, 2008. In June 2009, the Company received notice from SHPS that the shareholders of SHPS had approved a merger agreement between SHPS and SHPS Acquisition, Inc., pursuant to which the common stock of SHPS, including the common stock owned by the Company, would be converted into the right to receive $0.000001 per share in cash. SHPS informed the Company that it believed the estimated fair value of the SHPS common stock to be equal to such per share amount. As a result of this transaction and evaluation of the Company’s legal options, the Company believed it was more likely than not that it would not be able to recover the $2.1 million carrying value of the investment in SHPS. Therefore, due to the decline in value that is other than temporary, management recorded a non-cash impairment loss of $2.1 million included in

 

67


Table of Contents

“Impairment loss on investment in SHPS” during 2009. Subsequent to the recording of the impairment loss, the Company liquidated its noncontrolling interest in SHPS by converting its SHPS common stock into cash for $0.000001 per share during 2009.

Investments Held in Rabbi Trust for Former ICT Chief Executive Officer — Securities held in a rabbi trust for a nonqualified plan trust agreement dated February 1, 2010 (the “Trust Agreement”) with respect to severance payable to John Brennan, the former chief executive officer of ICT, include the fair market value of debt securities, primarily United States (“U.S.”) Treasury Bills. See Note 13, Investments Held in Rabbi Trusts, for further information. The fair market value of these debt securities, classified as trading securities in accordance with ASC 320 “Investment – Debt and Equity Securities”, is determined by quoted market prices and is adjusted to the current market price at the end of each reporting period. The net realized and unrealized gains and losses on trading securities, which are included in “Other income and expense” in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations, are not material for the years ended December 31, 2011 and 2010. For purposes of determining realized gains and losses, the cost of securities sold is based on specific identification.

The “Accrued employee compensation and benefits” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet as of December 31, 2010 includes a $0.1 million obligation for severance payable to the former executive due in varying installments in accordance with the Trust Agreement. Final payment was made in January 2011.

Goodwill The Company accounts for goodwill and other intangible assets under ASC 350 (“ASC 350”) “Intangibles – Goodwill and Other.” The Company expects to receive future benefits from previously acquired goodwill over an indefinite period of time. Goodwill and other intangible assets with indefinite lives are not subject to amortization, but instead must be reviewed at least annually, and more frequently in the presence of certain circumstances, for impairment by applying a fair value based test. Fair value for goodwill is based on discounted cash flows, market multiples and/or appraised values, as appropriate, and an analysis of our market capitalization. Under ASC 350, the carrying value of assets is calculated at the reporting unit. If the fair value of the reporting unit is less than its carrying value, goodwill is considered impaired and an impairment loss is recorded to the extent that the fair value of the goodwill within the reporting unit is less than its carrying value.

The Company completed its annual goodwill impairment test during the three months ended September 30, 2011, which included the consideration of certain economic factors and determined that the carrying amount of goodwill was not impaired, except as discussed in Note 5, Fair Value.

Intangible Assets — Intangible assets, primarily customer relationships, trade names, existing technologies and covenants not to compete, are amortized using the straight-line method over their estimated useful lives which approximate the pattern in which the economic benefits of the assets are consumed. The Company periodically evaluates the recoverability of intangible assets and takes into account events or changes in circumstances that warrant revised estimates of useful lives or that indicate that impairment exists. Fair value for intangible assets is based on discounted cash flows, market multiples and/or appraised values as appropriate. The Company does not have intangible assets with indefinite lives. See Note 5, Fair Value, for further information regarding the impairment of intangible assets.

Value Added Tax Receivables — The Philippine operations are subject to value added tax (“VAT”) which is usually applied to all goods and services purchased throughout The Philippines. Upon validation and certification of the VAT receivables by the Philippine government, the resulting value added tax certificates (“certificates”) can be either used to offset current tax obligations or offered for sale to the Philippine government. The Philippine government previously allowed companies to sell the certificates to third parties, but this option was eliminated during the three months ended September 30, 2011. The VAT receivables balance is recorded at its net realizable value.

Income Taxes The Company accounts for income taxes under ASC 740 (“ASC 740”) “Income Taxes” which requires recognition of deferred tax assets and liabilities to reflect tax consequences of differences between the tax bases of assets and liabilities and their reported amounts in the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements. Deferred tax assets are reduced by a valuation allowance if, based on the weight of available evidence, both positive and negative, for each respective tax jurisdiction, it is more likely than not that the deferred tax assets will not be realized in accordance with the criteria of ASC 740. Valuation allowances are established against deferred tax assets due to an uncertainty of realization. Valuation allowances are reviewed each period on a tax jurisdiction by tax jurisdiction basis to analyze whether there is sufficient positive or negative evidence, in accordance with criteria of ASC 740, to support a change in judgment about the realizability of the related deferred tax assets. Uncertainties

 

68


Table of Contents

regarding expected future income in certain jurisdictions could affect the realization of deferred tax assets in those jurisdictions.

The Company evaluates tax positions that have been taken or are expected to be taken in its tax returns, and records a liability for uncertain tax positions in accordance with ASC 740. ASC 740 contains a two-step approach to recognizing and measuring uncertain tax positions. First, tax positions are recognized if the weight of available evidence indicates that it is more likely than not that the position will be sustained upon examination, including resolution of related appeals or litigation processes, if any. Second, the tax position is measured as the largest amount of tax benefit that has a greater than 50% likelihood of being realized upon settlement. The Company recognizes interest and penalties related to unrecognized tax benefits in the provision for income taxes in the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements.

Self-Insurance Programs The Company self-insures for certain levels of workers’ compensation and, as of January 1, 2011, began self-funding the medical, prescription drug and dental benefit plans in the United States. Estimated costs of this self-insurance program are accrued at the projected settlements for known and anticipated claims. Amounts related to this self-insurance program are included in “Accrued employee compensation and benefits” and “Other long-term liabilities” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets.

Deferred Grants Recognition of income associated with grants for land and the acquisition of property, buildings and equipment (together, “property grants”) is deferred until after the completion and occupancy of the building and title has passed to the Company, and the funds have been released from escrow. The deferred amounts for both land and building are amortized and recognized as a reduction of depreciation expense included within general and administrative costs over the corresponding useful lives of the related assets. Amounts received in excess of the cost of the building are allocated to the cost of equipment and, only after the grants are released from escrow, recognized as a reduction of depreciation expense over the weighted average useful life of the related equipment, which approximates five years. Upon sale of the related facilities, any deferred grant balance is recognized in full and is included in the gain on sale of property and equipment.

The Company receives government employment grants as an incentive to create and maintain permanent employment positions for a specified time period. The grants are repayable, under certain terms and conditions, if the Company’s relevant employment levels do not meet or exceed the employment levels set forth in the grant agreements. Accordingly, grant monies received are deferred and amortized using the proportionate performance model over the required employment period.

Deferred Revenue The Company receives up-front fees in connection with certain contracts. The deferred revenue is earned over the service periods of the respective contracts, which range from 30 days to seven years. Deferred revenue included in current liabilities in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets includes the up-front fees associated with services to be provided over the next ensuing twelve month period and the up-front fees associated with services to be provided over multiple years in connection with contracts that contain cancellation and refund provisions, whereby the manufacturers or customers can terminate the contracts and demand pro-rata refunds of the up-front fees with short notice. Deferred revenue included in current liabilities in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets also includes estimated penalties and holdbacks for failure to meet specified minimum service levels in certain contracts and other performance based contingencies.

Stock-Based Compensation — The Company has three stock-based compensation plans: the 2011 Equity Incentive Plan (for employees and certain non-employees), the 2004 Non-Employee Director Fee Plan (for non-employee directors), approved by the shareholders, and the Deferred Compensation Plan (for certain eligible employees). All of these plans are discussed more fully in Note 26, Stock-Based Compensation. Stock-based awards under these plans may consist of common stock, common stock units, stock options, cash-settled or stock-settled stock appreciation rights, restricted stock and other stock-based awards. The Company issues common stock and treasury stock to satisfy stock option exercises or vesting of stock awards.

In accordance with ASC 718 (“ASC 718”) “Compensation – Stock Compensation”, the Company recognizes in its Consolidated Statements of Operations the grant-date fair value of stock options and other equity-based compensation issued to employees and directors. Compensation expense for equity-based awards is recognized over the requisite service period, usually the vesting period, while compensation expense for liability-based awards (those usually settled in cash rather than stock) is re-measured to fair value at each balance sheet date until the awards are settled.

 

69


Table of Contents

Fair Value of Financial Instruments — The following methods and assumptions were used to estimate the fair value of each class of financial instruments for which it is practicable to estimate that value:

 

   

Cash, Short-Term and Other Investments, Investments Held in Rabbi Trusts and Accounts Payable – The carrying values for cash, short-term and other investments, investments held in rabbi trusts and accounts payable approximate their fair values.

   

Forward Currency Forward Contracts and Options – Forward currency forward contracts and options, including premiums paid on options, are recognized at fair value based on quoted market prices of comparable instruments or, if none are available, on pricing models or formulas using current market and model assumptions, including adjustments for credit risk.

Fair Value Measurements - ASC 820 (“ASC 820”) “Fair Value Measurements and Disclosures” defines fair value, establishes a framework for measuring fair value in accordance with generally accepted accounting principles and expands disclosures about fair value measurements. ASC 820-10-20 clarifies that fair value is an exit price, representing the amount that would be received to sell an asset or paid to transfer a liability in an orderly transaction between market participants.

ASC 825 (“ASC 825”) “Financial Instruments” permits an entity to measure certain financial assets and financial liabilities at fair value with changes in fair value recognized in earnings each period. The Company has not elected to use the fair value option permitted under ASC 825 for any of its financial assets and financial liabilities that are not already recorded at fair value.

A description of the Company’s policies regarding fair value measurement is summarized below.

Fair Value Hierarchy – ASC 820-10-35 requires disclosure about how fair value is determined for assets and liabilities and establishes a hierarchy for which these assets and liabilities must be grouped, based on significant levels of observable or unobservable inputs. Observable inputs reflect market data obtained from independent sources, while unobservable inputs reflect the Company’s market assumptions. This hierarchy requires the use of observable market data when available. These two types of inputs have created the following fair value hierarchy:

 

   

Level 1 – Quoted prices for identical instruments in active markets.

   

Level 2 – Quoted prices for similar instruments in active markets; quoted prices for identical or similar instruments in markets that are not active; and model-derived valuations in which all significant inputs and significant value drivers are observable in active markets.

   

Level 3 – Valuations derived from valuation techniques in which one or more significant inputs or significant value drivers are unobservable.

Determination of Fair Value - The Company generally uses quoted market prices (unadjusted) in active markets for identical assets or liabilities that the Company has the ability to access to determine fair value, and classifies such items in Level 1. Fair values determined by Level 2 inputs utilize inputs other than quoted market prices included in Level 1 that are observable for the asset or liability, either directly or indirectly. Level 2 inputs include quoted market prices in active markets for similar assets or liabilities, and inputs other than quoted market prices that are observable for the asset or liability. Level 3 inputs are unobservable inputs for the asset or liability, and include situations where there is little, if any, market activity for the asset or liability.

If quoted market prices are not available, fair value is based upon internally developed valuation techniques that use, where possible, current market-based or independently sourced market parameters, such as interest rates, currency rates, etc. Assets or liabilities valued using such internally generated valuation techniques are classified according to the lowest level input or value driver that is significant to the valuation. Thus, an item may be classified in Level 3 even though there may be some significant inputs that are readily observable.

The following section describes the valuation methodologies used by the Company to measure fair value, including an indication of the level in the fair value hierarchy in which each asset or liability is generally classified.

 

70


Table of Contents

Money Market and Open-End Mutual Funds - The Company uses quoted market prices in active markets to determine the fair value of money market and open-end mutual funds, which are classified in Level 1 of the fair value hierarchy.

Foreign Currency Forward Contracts and Options - The Company enters into foreign currency forward contracts and options over the counter and values such contracts using quoted market prices of comparable instruments or, if none are available, on pricing models or formulas using current market and model assumptions, including adjustments for credit risk. The key inputs include forward or option foreign currency exchange rates and interest rates. These items are classified in Level 2 of the fair value hierarchy.

Investments Held in Rabbi Trusts — The investment assets of the rabbi trusts are valued using quoted market prices in active markets, which are classified in Level 1 of the fair value hierarchy. For additional information about the deferred compensation plan, refer to Note 13, Investments Held in Rabbi Trusts, and Note 26, Stock-Based Compensation.

Guaranteed Investment CertificatesGuaranteed investment certificates, with variable interest rates linked to the prime rate, approximate fair value due to the automatic ability to re-price with changes in the market; such items are classified in Level 2 of the fair value hierarchy.

Foreign Currency Translation The assets and liabilities of the Company’s foreign subsidiaries, whose functional currency is other than the U.S. Dollar, are translated at the exchange rates in effect on the reporting date, and income and expenses are translated at the weighted average exchange rate during the period. The net effect of translation gains and losses is not included in determining net income, but is included in “Accumulated other comprehensive income (loss)” (“AOCI”), which is reflected as a separate component of shareholders’ equity until the sale or until the complete or substantially complete liquidation of the net investment in the foreign subsidiary. Foreign currency transactional gains and losses are included in “Other income (expense)” in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations.

Foreign Currency and Derivative Instruments The Company accounts for financial derivative instruments under ASC 815 (“ASC 815”) “Derivatives and Hedging”. The Company generally utilizes non-deliverable forward contracts and options expiring within one to 24 months to reduce its foreign currency exposure due to exchange rate fluctuations on forecasted cash flows denominated in non-functional foreign currencies and net investments in foreign operations. In using derivative financial instruments to hedge exposures to changes in exchange rates, the Company exposes itself to counterparty credit risk.

The Company designates derivatives as either (1) a hedge of a forecasted transaction or of the variability of cash flows to be received or paid related to a recognized asset or liability (“cash flow” hedge); (2) a hedge of a net investment in a foreign operation; or (3) a derivative that does not qualify for hedge accounting. To qualify for hedge accounting treatment, a derivative must be highly effective in mitigating the designated risk of the hedged item. Effectiveness of the hedge is formally assessed at inception and throughout the life of the hedging relationship. Even if a derivative qualifies for hedge accounting treatment, there may be an element of ineffectiveness of the hedge.

Changes in the fair value of derivatives that are highly effective and designated as cash flow hedges are recorded in AOCI, until the forecasted underlying transactions occur. Any realized gains or losses resulting from the cash flow hedges are recognized together with the hedged transaction within “Revenues”. Changes in the fair value of derivatives that are highly effective and designated as a net investment hedge are recorded in cumulative translation adjustment in AOCI, offsetting the change in cumulative translation adjustment attributable to the hedged portion of the Company’s net investment in the foreign operation. Any realized gains and losses from settlements of the net investment hedge remain in AOCI until partial or complete liquidation of the net investment. Ineffectiveness is measured based on the change in fair value of the forward contracts and options and the fair value of the hypothetical derivatives with terms that match the critical terms of the risk being hedged. Hedge ineffectiveness is recognized within “Revenues” for cash flow hedges and within “Other income (expense)” for net investment hedges. Cash flows from the derivative contracts are classified within the operating section in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Cash Flows.

The Company formally documents all relationships between hedging instruments and hedged items, as well as its risk management objective and strategy for undertaking various hedging activities. This process includes linking all derivatives that are designated as cash flow hedges to forecasted transactions. Hedges of a net investment in a

 

71


Table of Contents

foreign operation are linked to the specific foreign operation. The Company also formally assesses, both at the hedge’s inception and on an ongoing basis, whether the derivatives that are used in hedging transactions are highly effective on a prospective and retrospective basis. When it is determined that a derivative is not highly effective as a hedge or that it has ceased to be a highly effective hedge or if a forecasted hedge is no longer probable of occurring, the Company discontinues hedge accounting prospectively. At December 31, 2011 and 2010, all hedges were determined to be highly effective.

The Company also periodically enters into forward contracts that are not designated as hedges as defined under ASC 815. The purpose of these derivative instruments is to reduce the effects from fluctuations caused by volatility in currency exchange rates on the Company’s operating results and cash flows. All changes in the fair value of the derivative instruments are included in “Other income (expense)”. See Note 12, Financial Derivatives, for further information on financial derivative instruments.

New Accounting Standards Not Yet Adopted

In May 2011, the Financial Accounting Standards Board (the “FASB”) issued Accounting Standards Update (“ASU”) 2011-04 (“ASU 2011-04”) “Fair Value Measurement (Topic 820) – Amendments to Achieve Common Fair Value Measurement and Disclosure Requirements in U.S. GAAP and IFRSs”. The amendments in ASU 2011-04 result in common fair value measurement and disclosure requirements in U.S. GAAP and International Financial Reporting Standards (“IFRS”). Consequently, the amendments change the wording used to describe many of the requirements in U.S. GAAP for measuring fair value and for disclosing information about fair value measurements. Some of the amendments clarify the FASB’s intent about the application of existing fair value measurement requirements. Other amendments change a particular principle or requirement for measuring fair value or for disclosing information about fair value measurements. The amendments in ASU 2011-04 are to be applied prospectively and are effective during interim and annual periods beginning after December 15, 2011. The adoption of ASU 2011-04 as of January 1, 2012 did not have a material impact on the financial condition, results of operations and cash flows of the Company.

In June 2011, the FASB issued ASU 2011-05 (“ASU 2011-05”) “Comprehensive Income (Topic 220) – Presentation of Comprehensive Income”. The amendments in ASU 2011-05 require that all nonowner changes in stockholders’ equity be presented either in a single continuous statement of comprehensive income or in two separate but consecutive statements. In the two-statement approach, the first statement should present total net income and its components followed consecutively by a second statement that should present total other comprehensive income, the components of other comprehensive income, and the total of comprehensive income. The amendments in ASU 2011-05 are to be applied retrospectively and are effective during interim and annual periods beginning after December 15, 2011, and may be early adopted. As this standard impacts presentation only, the adoption of ASU 2011-05 as of January 1, 2012 did not impact the financial condition, results of operations and cash flows of the Company.

In September 2011, the FASB issued ASU 2011-08 (“ASU 2011-08”) “Intangibles – Goodwill and Other (Topic 350) Testing Goodwill for Impairment”. The amendments in ASU 2011-08 provide entities with the option to first assess qualitative factors to determine whether the existence of events or circumstances leads to a determination that it is more likely than not that the fair value of a reporting unit is less than its carrying amount. If, after assessing the totality of events or circumstances, an entity determines it is not more likely than not that the fair value of a reporting unit is less than its carrying amount, then performing the two-step impairment test is unnecessary. However, if an entity concludes otherwise, then it is required to perform the first step of the two-step impairment test by calculating the fair value of the reporting unit and comparing the fair value with the carrying amount of the reporting unit. If the carrying amount of a reporting unit exceeds its fair value, then the entity is required to perform the second step of the goodwill impairment test to measure the amount of the impairment loss, if any. Under the amendments in ASU 2011-08, an entity has the option to bypass the qualitative assessment for any reporting unit in any period and proceed directly to performing the first step of the two-step goodwill impairment test. An entity may resume performing the qualitative assessment in any subsequent period. The amendments in ASU 2011-08 are effective for annual and interim goodwill impairment tests performed for fiscal years beginning after December 15, 2011, and may be early adopted. The adoption of ASU 2011-08 as of January 1, 2012 did not have a material impact on the financial condition, results of operations and cash flows of the Company.

In December 2011, the FASB issued ASU 2011-11 (“ASU 2011-11”) “Balance Sheet (Topic 210) – Disclosures about Offsetting Assets and Liabilities”. The amendments in ASU 2011-11 will enhance disclosures by requiring improved information about financial and derivative instruments that are either 1) offset (netting assets and liabilities) in accordance with Section 210-20-45 or Section 815-10-45 of the FASB Accounting Standards

 

72


Table of Contents

Codification or 2) subject to an enforceable master netting arrangement or similar agreement. The amendments in ASU 2011-11 are effective for fiscal years beginning on or after January 1, 2013, and interim periods within those years. An entity should provide the disclosures required by those amendments retrospectively for all comparative periods presented. The Company does not expect the adoption of ASU 2011-11 to materially impact its financial condition, results of operations and cash flows.

In December 2011, the FASB issued ASU 2011-12 (“ASU 2011-12”) “Comprehensive Income (Topic 220) – Deferral of the Effective Date for Amendments to the Presentation of Reclassifications of Items Out of Accumulated Other Comprehensive Income in Accounting Standards Update No. 2011-05”. The amendments in ASU 2011-12 defer the requirement to present reclassification adjustments for each component of accumulated other comprehensive income in both net income and other comprehensive income on the face of the financial statements. The amendments in ASU 2011-12 are effective at the same time as ASU 2011-05 so that entities will not be required to comply with the presentation requirements in ASU 2011-05 that ASU 2011-05 is deferring. The amendments in ASU 2011-12 are effective for fiscal years, and interim periods within those years, beginning after December 15, 2011. As ASU 2011-12 impacts presentation only, the adoption of ASU 2011-12 as of January 1, 2012 did not impact the financial condition, results of operations and cash flows of the Company.

Note 2. Acquisition of ICT

On February 2, 2010, the Company acquired 100% of the outstanding common shares and voting interest of ICT through a merger of ICT with and into a subsidiary of the Company. ICT provided outsourced customer management and business process outsourcing solutions with its operations located in the United States, Canada, Europe, Latin America, India, Australia and The Philippines. The results of ICT’s operations have been included in the Company’s Consolidated Financial Statements since its acquisition on February 2, 2010. The Company acquired ICT to expand and complement its global footprint, provide entry into additional vertical markets, and increase revenues to enhance its ability to leverage the Company’s infrastructure to produce improved sustainable operating margins. This resulted in the Company paying a substantial premium for ICT resulting in recognition of goodwill.

The acquisition date fair value of the consideration transferred totaled $277.8 million, which consisted of the following (in thousands):

 

 

     Total  

Cash

     $ 141,161    

Common stock

     136,673    
  

 

 

 
     $         277,834    
  

 

 

 

The fair value of the 5.6 million common shares issued was determined based on the Company’s closing share price of $24.40 on the acquisition date.

The cash portion of the acquisition was funded through borrowings consisting of a $75 million short-term loan from KeyBank and a $75 million Term Loan, which were paid off in March 2010 and July 2010, respectively. See Note 20, Borrowings, for further information.

 

73


Table of Contents

The Company accounted for the acquisition in accordance with ASC 805 “Business Combinations”, whereby the purchase price paid was allocated to the tangible and identifiable intangible assets acquired and liabilities assumed from ICT based on their estimated fair values as of the closing date. The Company finalized its purchase price allocation during the three months ended December 31, 2010. The following table summarizes the estimated acquisition date fair values of the assets acquired and liabilities assumed, the measurement period adjustments that occurred during the three months ended December 31, 2010 and the final purchase price allocation as of February 2, 2010 (in thousands):

 

 

     February 2,
2010 (As
initially
reported)
     Measurement
Period
Adjustments
     February 2,
2010 (As
adjusted)
 

Cash and cash equivalents

     $ 63,987          $         $ 63,987    

Receivables

     75,890                  75,890    

Income tax receivable

     2,844          (1,941)         903    

Prepaid expenses

     4,846                  4,846    

Other current assets

     4,950          149          5,099    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total current assets

     152,517          (1,792)         150,725    

Property and equipment

     57,910                  57,910    

Goodwill

     90,123          7,647          97,770    

Intangibles

     60,310                  60,310    

Deferred charges and other assets

     7,978          (3,965)         4,013    

Short-term debt

     (10,000)                 (10,000)   

Accounts payable

     (12,412)         (168)         (12,580)   

Accrued employee compensation and benefits

     (23,873)         (1,309)         (25,182)   

Income taxes payable

     (2,451)         2,013          (438)   

Other accrued expenses and current liabilities

     (10,951)         (464)         (11,415)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total current liabilities

     (59,687)         72          (59,615)   

Deferred grants

     (706)                 (706)   

Long-term income tax liabilities

     (5,573)         (19,924)         (25,497)   

Other long-term liabilities (1)

     (25,038)         17,962          (7,076)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $           277,834          $         $         277,834    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

  (1) 

Includes primarily long-term deferred tax liabilities.

The above fair values of assets acquired and liabilities assumed were based on the information that was available as of the acquisition date to estimate the fair value of assets acquired and liabilities assumed. The measurement period adjustments relate primarily to unrecognized tax benefits and related offsets, tax liabilities relating to the determination as of the date of the ICT acquisition that the Company intended to distribute a majority of the accumulated and undistributed earnings of the ICT Philippine subsidiary and its direct parent, ICT Group Netherlands B.V. to SYKES, its ultimate U.S. parent, and certain accrual adjustments related to labor and benefit costs in Argentina. The measurement period adjustments were completed as of December 31, 2010.

The $97.8 million of goodwill was assigned to the Company’s Americas and EMEA operating segments in the amount of $97.7 million and $0.1 million, respectively. The goodwill recognized is attributable primarily to synergies the Company expects to achieve as the acquisition increases the opportunity for sustained long-term operating margin expansion by leveraging general and administrative expenses over a larger revenue base. Pursuant to federal income tax regulations, the ICT acquisition was considered to be a non-taxable transaction; therefore, no amount of intangibles or goodwill from this acquisition will be deductible for tax purposes. The fair value of receivables acquired was $75.9 million, with the gross contractual amount being $76.4 million, of which $0.5 million was not expected to be collected.

 

74


Table of Contents

Total net assets acquired (liabilities assumed) by operating segment as of February 2, 2010, the acquisition date, were as follows (in thousands):

 

 

Consolidatedaa Consolidatedaa Consolidatedaa Consolidatedaa
     Americas      EMEA      Other      Consolidated  

Net assets (liabilities)

     $ 278,703          $ (869)         $         $ 277,834    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Fair values are based on management’s estimates and assumptions including variations of the income approach, the cost approach and the market approach. The following table presents the Company’s purchased intangibles assets as of February 2, 2010, the acquisition date (in thousands):

 

 

Period (years)aa Period (years)aa
     Amount
Assigned
     Weighted
Average
Amortization
Period (years)
 

Customer relationships

     $ 57,900            

Trade name

     1,000            

Proprietary software

     850            

Non-compete agreements

     560            
  

 

 

    
     $ 60,310            
  

 

 

    

After the ICT acquisition in February, 2010, the Company paid off the $10.0 million outstanding balance plus accrued interest of the ICT short-term debt assumed upon acquisition. The related interest expense included in “Interest expense” in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for the year ended December 31, 2010 was not material.

The Company’s Consolidated Statement of Operations for the year ended December 31, 2010 includes ICT revenues from continuing operations of $362.7 million and the ICT loss from continuing operations, net of taxes, of $(26.9) million from the February 2, 2010 acquisition date through December 31, 2010.

The following table presents the unaudited pro forma combined revenues and net earnings as if ICT had been included in the consolidated results of the Company for the entire year for the years ended December 31, 2010 and 2009. The pro forma financial information is not indicative of the results of operations that would have been achieved if the acquisition and related borrowings had taken place on January 1, 2010 and 2009 (in thousands):

 

 

$1,162,040aa $1,162,040aa
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2010      2009  

Revenues

     $ 1,162,040          $ 1,154,516    

Income from continuing operations, net of taxes

     $ 48,504          $ 44,571    

Income from continuing operations per common share:

     

Basic

     $ 1.04          $ 0.96    

Diluted

     $ 1.04          $ 0.96    

These amounts have been calculated to reflect the additional depreciation, amortization, and interest expense that would have been incurred assuming the fair value adjustments and borrowings occurred on January 1, 2010, together with the consequential tax effects. In addition, these amounts exclude costs incurred which are directly attributable to the acquisition, and which do not have a continuing impact on the combined companies operating results. Included in these costs are severance, advisory and legal costs, net of the consequential tax effects.

 

75


Table of Contents

The following table presents acquisition-related costs included in “General and administrative” costs in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations (in thousands):

 

 

     Years Ended December 31,  
             2011                      2010                      2009          

Severance costs:

        

Americas

     $ -            $ 1,234           $ -      

EMEA

     -            185           -      

Corporate

     126           14,928           -      
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     126           16,347           -      

Lease termination and other costs: (1)

        

Americas

     (277)          7,220           -      

EMEA

     (206)          1,654           -      
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     (483)          8,874           -      

Transaction and integration costs:

        

Corporate

     13           9,302           3,349     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     13           9,302           3,349     

Depreciation and amortization: (2)

        

Americas

     12,168           11,770           -      

EMEA

     -            25           -      
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     12,168           11,795           -      
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total acquisition-related costs

     $ 11,824           $ 46,318           $ 3,349     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

(1)

Amounts related to the Third Quarter 2010 Exit Plan and the Fourth Quarter 2010 Exit Plan. See Note 4.

(2)

Depreciation resulted from the adjustment to fair values of the acquired property and equipment and amortization of the fair values of the acquired intangibles.

Note 3. Discontinued Operations

The results of discontinued operations, which consist of the Spanish and Argentine operations, were as follows (in thousands):

 

 

     Years Ended December 31,  
             2011                      2010                      2009          

Revenues:

        

Spain

     $ 39,341           $ 36,806           $ 44,221     

Argentina

     -            40,676           32,467     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 39,341           $ 77,482           $ 76,688     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Income (loss) from discontinued operations before income taxes:

        

Spain

     $ (4,532)           $ (6,417)          $ 1,475     

Argentina

     -            (6,476)          (2,931)    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     (4,532)           (12,893)          (1,456)    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Income taxes: (1)

        

Spain

     -            -            -      

Argentina

     -            -            -      
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     -            -            -      
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Income (loss) from discontinued operations, net of taxes:

        

Spain

     (4,532)          (6,417)          1,475     

Argentina

     -            (6,476)          (2,931)    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ (4,532)          $ (12,893)          $ (1,456)    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

(1)

There were no income taxes on the loss from discontinued operations as any tax benefit from the losses would be offset by a valuation allowance.

 

76


Table of Contents

Spanish Operations Held for Sale

In November 2011, the Finance Committee of the Board of Directors of the Company authorized management to pursue the sale of the Company’s Spanish operations. Management concluded the operations were no longer consistent with the Company’s strategic direction. These operations met the held for sale criteria as of December 31, 2011; therefore, the Company reflected the assets and related liabilities of the Spanish operations as “Assets held for sale, discontinued operations” and “Liabilities held for sale, discontinued operations” in the accompanying Balance Sheet as of December 31, 2011. The Company reflected the operating results related to the Spanish operations as discontinued operations in the Consolidated Statements of Operations for the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009. Cash flows from discontinued operations are included in the Consolidated Statements of Cash Flows for the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009. This business was historically reported by the Company as part of the EMEA segment.

The assets and liabilities of the Spanish operations in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets were as follows (in thousands):

 

 

     December 31,  
     2011      2010  

Assets (1)

     

Current assets:

     

Cash and cash equivalents

     $   -          $ 1,245    

Receivables, net

     8,970          15,397    

Prepaid expenses

     23            
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total current assets

     8,993          16,642    

Property and equipment, net

             1,183    

Deferred charges and other assets

     597          736    
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total assets (2)

     9,590          18,561    
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Liabilities (1)

     

Current liabilities:

     

Accounts payable

     1,191          1,576    

Accrued employee compensation and benefits

     4,592          2,301    

Deferred revenue

     335          258    

Other accrued expenses and current liabilities

     1,010          1,993    
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total current liabilities (3)

     7,128          6,128    
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total net assets

     $   2,462          $   12,433    
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

(1) 

Classifed and included in the respective line items in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet as of December 31, 2010.

(2) 

Classifed as current and included in “Assets held for sale, discontinued operations” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet as of December 31, 2011, as the Spanish operations are expected to be sold within the next 12 months.

(3) 

Classified as current and included in “Liabilities held for sale, discontinued operations” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet as of December 31, 2011, as the Spanish operations are expected to be sold within the next 12 months.

During the three months ended December 31, 2011, the Company recorded an impairment of $0.8 million related to the write-down of property and equipment, primarily leasehold improvements and software, in conjunction with the classification of the Spanish operations as held for sale. The impairment charges represented the amount by which the carrying value exceeded the fair value of these assets, as defined in ASC 820, and are included in discontinued operations in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for the year ended December 31, 2011.

Sale of Argentine Operations in 2010

On December 16, 2010, the Board of Directors (the “Board”) of SYKES, upon the recommendation of its Finance Committee, sold its Argentina operations, which were operated through two Argentine subsidiaries: Centro Interaccion Multimedia S.A. (“CIMSA”) and ICT Services of Argentina, S.A. (“ICT Argentina”), together the “Argentine operations.” CIMSA and ICT Argentina were offshore contact centers providing contact center services

 

77


Table of Contents

through a total of three centers in Argentina to clients in the United States and in the Republic of Argentina. The decision to exit Argentina was made due to surging costs, primarily chronic wage increases, which dramatically reduced the appeal of the Argentina footprint among the Company’s existing and new global clients and thus the overall future profitability of the Argentine operations.

On December 13, 2010, the Company entered a stock purchase agreement, and pursuant thereto, the Company sold all of the shares of capital stock of CIMSA to individual purchasers for a nominal price. Pursuant to the CIMSA stock purchase agreement, immediately prior to closing, the Company made a capital contribution of $9.5 million to CIMSA to cover a portion of CIMSA’s liabilities. Immediately after closing, the purchasers made a capital contribution to CIMSA of $1.0 million, and CIMSA repaid a loan of $1.0 million to one of the Company’s subsidiaries. As this was a stock transaction, the Company has no future obligation with regard to CIMSA and there are no material post closing obligations.

Additionally, on December 22, 2010, the Company entered into a letter of intent (the “ICT Letter of Intent”) to sell all of the shares of capital stock of ICT Argentina to a group of individual purchasers for a nominal purchase price. Pursuant to the ICT Letter of Intent, immediately prior to closing, the Company funded ICT Argentina with a capital contribution of $3.5 million to cover a portion of ICT Argentina’s liabilities. Also on December 24, 2010, the Company entered into the stock purchase agreement, and pursuant thereto, completed the sale transaction. As this was a stock transaction, the Company has no future obligation with regard to ICT Argentina and there are no material post closing obligations.

The loss on the sale of the Argentine operations amounted to $29.9 million pre-tax and $23.5 million after tax at December 31, 2010. The sale of Argentine operations was a taxable transaction that resulted in a $6.4 million tax benefit. The effective tax rate on the loss on the sale of Argentina of 21.4% differs from the expected 35.0% statutory rate due to a valuation allowance established on the foreign deferred tax asset recognized as a result of the sale, partially offset by a reduction in U.S. taxes related to foreign earnings distributions and the write off of intercompany receivables resulting in tax benefits of $2.9 million and $3.5 million, respectively. During the three months ended December 31, 2011, the Company reversed the accrued liability related to the expiration of the indemnification to the purchaser for the possible loss of a specific client business, which reduced the net loss on sale of the Argentine operations by $0.6 million. There was no related income tax effect.

As a result of the sale of the Argentine operations, the operating results related to the Argentine operations have been reflected as discontinued operations in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations for the years ended December 31, 2010 and 2009. This business was historically reported by the Company as part of the Americas segment.

During 2010, the Company recorded an impairment of $0.7 million related to the write-down of long-lived assets in Argentina, primarily leasehold improvements and software, which were no longer recoverable. The impairment charge represented the amount by which the carrying value exceeded the fair value of these assets which cannot be redeployed to other locations and are included in discontinued operations in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for 2010.

Note 4. Costs Associated with Exit or Disposal Activities

Fourth Quarter 2011 Exit Plan

During the three months ended December 31, 2011, the Company announced a plan to rationalize seats in certain U.S. sites and close certain locations in EMEA (the “Fourth Quarter 2011 Exit Plan”). The details are described below, by segment.

Americas

During the three months ended December 31, 2011, as part of an on-going effort to streamline excess capacity related to the integration of the ICT acquisition and align it with the needs of the market, the Company announced a plan to rationalize approximately 1,200 seats in the U.S., some of which are revenue generating, with plans to migrate the associated revenues to other locations within the U.S. Approximately 500 employees are expected to be affected and the Company expects to complete the actions associated with the Americas plan on or before October 31, 2012.

 

78


Table of Contents

The major costs estimated to be incurred as a result of these actions are program transfer costs, facility-related costs (primarily consisting of those costs associated with the real estate leases), and impairments of long-lived assets (primarily leasehold improvements and equipment) estimated at $1.0 million. The Company recorded $0.5 million of the costs associated with these actions as non-cash impairment charges included in “Impairment of long-lived assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for the year ended December 31, 2011, while approximately $0.5 million represents cash expenditures for program transfer and facility-related costs, including obligations under the leases, the last of which ends in January 2013. There is no accrual as no actions have taken place to transfer programs or close the facilities as of December 31, 2011. No cash has been paid through December 31, 2011 for the program transfer costs or facility-related costs.

EMEA

During the three months ended December 31, 2011, in an effort to improve the Company’s overall profitability in the EMEA region, the Company committed to close a customer contact management center in South Africa and a customer contact management center in Ireland, as well as some capacity rationalization in the Netherlands, all components of the EMEA segment. Through these actions, the Company expects to improve its cost structure in the EMEA region by optimizing its capacity utilization. While the Company plans to migrate approximately $3.2 million of annualized call volumes of the Ireland facility to other facilities within EMEA, the Company does not anticipate the remaining call volume in Ireland or any of the annualized revenue from the Netherlands or South Africa facilities, which was $18.8 million, will be captured and migrated to other facilities within the region. The number of seats anticipated for rationalization across the EMEA region approximates 900 with an anticipated total of approximately 500 employees affected by the actions. The Company expects to close these facilities by July 2012 and substantially complete the actions associated with the EMEA plan on or before September 30, 2012.

The major costs estimated to be incurred as a result of these actions are facility-related costs (primarily consisting of those costs associated with the real estate leases), impairments of long-lived assets (primarily leasehold improvements and equipment) and anticipated severance-related costs estimated at $7.6 million. The Company recorded $0.5 million of the costs associated with these actions as non-cash impairment charges included in “Impairment of long-lived assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for the year ended December 31, 2011, while approximately $7.1 million will be cash expenditures for severance-related costs and facility-related costs, primarily rent obligations to be paid through the remainder of the noncancelable term of the leases, the last of which ends in March 2013. The Company has paid $0.7 million in cash through December 31, 2011 of the severance-related and legal-related costs.

The following table summarizes the accrued liability associated with EMEA’s Fourth Quarter 2011 Exit Plan’s exit or disposal activities and related charges (none in 2010 or 2009) (in thousands):

 

 

     Beginning
Accrual at
January 1,
2011
     Charges
(Reversals)
for the Year
Ended
December 31,
2011 (1)
     Cash
Payments
     Other Non-
Cash
Changes (2)
     Ending Accrual
at December 31,
2011
     Short-term (3)      Long- term  

Lease obligations and facility exit costs

     $ -           $ 587           $ -           $ (10)          $ 577           $ 577           $ -     

Severance and related costs

     -           5,185           (653)          (62)          4,470           4,470           -     

Legal-related costs

     -           21           (8)          -           13           13           -     
     $ -           $ 5,793           $ (661)          $ (72)          $ 5,060           $ 5,060           $ -     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

(1)

During 2011, the Company recorded charges related to the initiation of the Fourth Quarter 2011 Exit Plan.

(2)

Effect of foreign currency translation.

(3)

Included in ‘Other accrued expenses and current liabilities’ in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet.

Fourth Quarter 2010 Exit Plan

During the quarter ended December 31, 2010, in furtherance of the Company’s long-term goals to manage and optimize capacity utilization, the Company committed to and closed a customer contact management center in the United Kingdom and a customer contact management center in Ireland, both components of the EMEA segment (the “Fourth Quarter 2010 Exit Plan”). These actions further enabled the Company to reduce operating costs by eliminating additional redundant space and to optimize capacity utilization rates where overlap exists. These actions were substantially completed by January 31, 2011. None of the revenues from the United Kingdom or Ireland facilities, which were approximately $1.3 million on an annualized basis, were captured and migrated to other facilities within the region. Loss from operations of the United Kingdom and Ireland are not material to the consolidated income (loss) from continuing operations; therefore, their results of operations have not been presented as discontinued operations in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations.

 

79


Table of Contents

The major costs incurred as a result of these actions were facility-related costs (primarily consisting of those costs associated with the real estate leases), impairments of long-lived assets (primarily leasehold improvements and equipment) and severance-related costs totaling $2.2 million as of December 31, 2011 ($2.1 million as of December 31, 2010). This increase of $0.1 million included in “General and administrative” costs in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations during the year ended December 31, 2011 is primarily due to the change in estimate of lease termination costs. The Company recorded $0.2 million of the costs associated with the Fourth Quarter 2010 Exit Plan as non-cash impairment charges (see Note 3, Discontinued Operations, for further information). Approximately $1.8 million represents cash expenditures for facility-related costs, primarily rent obligations to be paid through the remainder of the lease terms, the last of which ends in March 2014, and $0.2 million represents cash expenditures for severance-related costs. The Company has paid $1.1 million in cash through December 31, 2011 of the facility-related and severance-related costs.

The following table summarizes the accrued liability associated with the Fourth Quarter 2010 Exit Plan’s exit or disposal activities and related charges (none in 2009) (in thousands):

 

 

     Beginning
Accrual at
January 1,
2011
     Charges
(Reversals)
for the Year
Ended
December 31,
2011 (1)
     Cash
Payments
     Other Non-
Cash
Changes (2)
     Ending Accrual
at December 31,
2011
     Short-term (3)      Long-term (4)  

Lease obligations and facility exit costs

     $ 1,711           $ 70           $ (886)         $ (60)         $ 835           $ 398           $ 437     

Severance and related costs

     -           -           -           -           -           -           -     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 1,711           $ 70           $ (886)         $ (60)         $ 835           $ 398           $ 437     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

     Beginning
Accrual at
January 1,
2010
     Charges
(Reversals)
for the Year
Ended
December 31,
2010 (1)
     Cash
Payments
     Other Non-
Cash
Changes (2)
     Ending Accrual
at December 31,
2010
     Short-term (3)      Long-term (4)  

Lease obligations and facility exit costs

     $ -           $ 1,711           $ -           $ -           $ 1,711           $ 941           $ 770     

Severance and related costs

     -           185           (185)         -           -           -           -     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ -           $ 1,896           $ (185)         $ -           $ 1,711           $ 941           $ 770     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

  (1)

During 2011, the Company recorded additional lease termination costs, which are included in “General and administrative” costs in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations. During 2010, the Company recorded charges related to the initiation of the Fourth Quarter 2010 Exit Plan.

  (2)

Effect of foreign currency translation.

  (3)

Included in “Other accrued expenses and current liabilities” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets.

  (4)

Included in “Other long-term liabilities” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets.

See Note 3, Discontinued Operations, for impairment charges recorded in 2010 related to the Company’s Argentine operations, which were sold in December 2010.

Third Quarter 2010 Exit Plan

During the quarter ended September 30, 2010, consistent with the Company’s long-term goals to manage and optimize capacity utilization, the Company closed or committed to close four customer contact management centers in The Philippines and consolidated or committed to consolidate leased space in our Wilmington, Delaware and Newtown, Pennsylvania locations (the “Third Quarter 2010 Exit Plan”). These actions were in response to the facilities consolidation and capacity rationalization related to the ICT acquisition, enabling the Company to reduce operating costs by eliminating redundant space and to optimize capacity utilization rates where overlap exists. There were no employees affected by the Third Quarter 2010 Exit Plan. These actions were substantially completed by January 31, 2011.

The major costs incurred as a result of these actions were impairments of long-lived assets (primarily leasehold improvements) and facility-related costs (primarily consisting of those costs associated with the real estate leases) estimated at $10.5 million as of December 31, 2011 ($10.0 million as of December 31, 2010), all of which are in the Americas segment. The increase of $0.5 million during the year ended December 31, 2011 is primarily due to the change in assumptions related to the redeployment of property and equipment and a change in estimate of lease termination costs. The Company recorded $3.8 million of the costs associated with the Third Quarter 2010 Exit Plan as non-cash impairment charges, of which $0.7 million is included in “Impairment of long-lived assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for the year ended December 31, 2011 (see Note 5, Fair Value, for further information). The remaining $6.7 million represents cash expenditures for facility-related costs, primarily

 

80


Table of Contents

rent obligations to be paid through the remainder of the lease terms, the last of which ends in February 2017. The Company has paid $3.2 million in cash through December 31, 2011 related to these facility-related costs.

The following table summarizes the accrued liability associated with the Third Quarter 2010 Exit Plan’s exit or disposal activities and related charges (none in 2009) (in thousands):

 

 

    Beginning
Accrual at
January 1,
2011
    Charges
(Reversals)
for the Year
Ended
December 31,
2011 (1)
    Cash
Payments
    Other Non-
Cash
Changes (2)
    Ending Accrual
at December 31,
2011
    Short- term (3)     Long-term (4)  

Lease obligations and facility exit costs

    $ 6,141          $ (276)        $ (2,443)        $ 5          $ 3,427          $ 843          $ 2,584     
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

 

    Beginning
Accrual at
January 1,
2010
    Charges
(Reversals)
for the Year
Ended
December 31,
2010 (1)
    Cash
Payments
    Other Non-
Cash
Changes (2)
    Ending Accrual
at December 31,

2010
    Short-term (3)     Long-term (4)  

Lease obligations and facility exit costs

    $ -          $ 6,944          $ (803)        $ -          $ 6,141          $ 2,199          $ 3,942     
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

 

(1)

During 2011, the Company reversed accruals related to lease termination costs due to an unanticipated sublease at one of the sites, which reduced “General and administrative” costs in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations. This amount was partially offset by additional lease termination costs for one of the sites. During 2010, the Company recorded charges related to the initiation of the Third Quarter 2010 Exit Plan.

(2)

Effect of foreign currency translation.

(3)

Included in “Other accrued expenses and current liabilities” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets.

(4)

Included in “Other long-term liabilities” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets.

ICT Restructuring Plan

As of February 2, 2010, the Company assumed the liabilities of ICT, including restructuring accruals in connection with ICT’s plans to reduce its overall cost structure and adapt to changing economic conditions by closing various customer contact management centers in Europe and Canada prior to the end of their existing lease terms (the “ICT Restructuring Plan”). These remaining restructuring accruals, which related to ongoing lease and other contractual obligations, were paid in December 2011. Since acquiring ICT in February 2010, the Company has paid $1.9 million in cash through December 31, 2011 related to the ICT Restructuring Plan.

The following tables summarize the accrued liability associated with the ICT Restructuring Plan’s exit or disposal activities (none in 2009) (in thousands):

 

 

    Beginning
Accrual at
January 1,
2011
    Charges
(Reversals)
for the Year
Ended
December 31,
2011 (1)
    Cash
Payments
    Other Non-
Cash
Changes (2)
    Ending Accrual
at December 31,

2011
    Short-term (3)     Long-term (4)  

Lease obligations and facility exit costs

    $ 1,462          $ (276)          $ (1,139)          $ (47)          $ -          $ -          $ -     
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 
    Beginning
Accrual at
January 1,
2010
    Accrual
assumed
upon
acquisition of
ICT on
February 2,
2010 (1)
    Cash
Payments
    Other Non-
Cash
Changes
    Ending Accrual
at December 31,
2010
    Short-term (3)     Long-term (4)  

Lease obligations and facility exit costs

    $ -          $ 2,197          $ (735)          $ -          $ 1,462          $ 1,462          $ -     
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

 

(1)

During 2011, the Company reversed accruals related to the final settlement of termination costs, which reduced “General and administrative” costs in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations. During 2010, upon acquisition of ICT on February 2, 2010, the Company assumed ICT’s restructuring accruals.

(2)

Effect of foreign currency translation.

(3)

Included in “Other accrued expenses and current liabilities” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet.

(4)

Included in “Other long-term liabilities” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet.

 

81


Table of Contents

Note 5. Fair Value

The Company’s assets and liabilities measured at fair value on a recurring basis as of December 31, 2011 subject to the requirements of ASC 820 consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

December 31 December 31 December 31 December 31 December 31
        Fair Value Measurements at December 31, 2011 Using:  
        Balance at     Quoted Prices
in Active
Markets For
Identical Assets
    Significant
Other
Observable
Inputs
    Significant
Unobservable
Inputs
 
        December 31, 2011         Level (1)             Level (2)             Level (3)      

Assets:

         

Money market funds and open-end mutual funds included in “Cash and cash equivalents”

 

(1)  

   $ 68,651         $ 68,651         $ -           $ -       

Money market funds and open-end mutual funds in “Deferred charges and other assets”

 

(1)  

    12          12          -            -       

Foreign currency forward contracts

 

(2)  

    536          -            536          -       

Foreign currency option contracts

 

(2)  

    174          -            174          -       

Equity investments held in a rabbi trust for the Deferred Compensation Plan

 

(3)  

    2,817          2,817          -            -       

Debt investments held in a rabbi trust for the Deferred Compensation Plan

 

(3)  

    1,365          1,365          -            -       

Guaranteed investment certificates

 

(4)  

    65          -            65          -       
   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 
     $ 73,620         $     72,845         $     775         $     -       
   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Liabilities:

         

Foreign currency forward contracts

 

(5)  

   $ 752         $ -           $ 752         $ -       
   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 
     $     752         $ -           $ 752         $ -       
   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

 

(1)

In the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet.

(2)

Included in “Other current assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet. See Note 12.

(3)

Included in “Other current assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet. See Note 13.

(4)

Included in “Deferred charges and other assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet. See Note 15.

(5) 

Included in “Other accrued expenses and current liabilities” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet. See Note 18.

 

82


Table of Contents

The Company’s assets and liabilities measured at fair value on a recurring basis as of December 31, 2010 subject to the requirements of ASC 820 consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

     Fair Value Measurements at December 31, 2010 Using:  
     Balance at      Quoted Prices
in Active
Markets For
Identical Assets
     Significant
Other
Observable
Inputs
     Significant
Unobservable
Inputs
 
     December 31, 2010      Level (1)      Level (2)      Level (3)  

Assets:

           

Money market funds and open-end mutual funds included in “Cash and cash equivalents” (1)

     $ 5,893           $ 5,893           $ -             $ -       

Money market funds and open-end mutual funds in “Deferred charges and other assets” (1)

     747           747           -             -       

Foreign currency forward contracts (2)

     1,283           -             1,283           -       

Foreign currency option contracts (2)

     4,951           -             4,951           -       

Equity investments held in a rabbi trust for the Deferred Compensation Plan (3)

     2,647           2,647           -             -       

Debt investments held in a rabbi trust for the Deferred Compensation Plan (3)

     789           789           -             -       

U.S. Treasury Bills held in a rabbi trust for the former ICT chief executive officer (3)

     118           118           -             -       

Guaranteed investment certificates (4)

     53           -             53           -       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 16,481           $ 10,194           $ 6,287           $ -       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Liabilities:

           

Foreign currency forward contracts (5)

     $ 735           $ -             $ 735           $ -       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 735           $ -             $ 735           $ -       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

  (1)

In the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet.

  (2)

Included in “Other current assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet. See Note 12.

  (3)

Included in “Other current assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet. See Note 13.

  (4)

Included in “Deferred charges and other assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet. See Note 15.

  (5)

Included in “Other accrued expenses and current liabilities” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet. See Note 18.

 

83


Table of Contents

Certain assets, under certain conditions, are measured at fair value on a nonrecurring basis utilizing Level 3 inputs as described in Note 1, Overview and Summary of Significant Accounting Policies, like those associated with acquired businesses, including goodwill and other intangible assets and other long-lived assets. For these assets, measurement at fair value in periods subsequent to their initial recognition would be applicable if one or more of these assets was determined to be impaired. The following table summarizes the adjusted carrying values for assets measured at fair value on a nonrecurring basis (no liabilities) subject to the requirements of ASC 820 (in thousands):

 

 

     December 31,  
     2011      2010  

Americas:

     

Goodwill

     $ 121,342          $ 122,303    

Intangibles, net

     44,472          52,752    

Investment in SHPS

               

Property and equipment, net

     79,874          99,089    

EMEA:

     

Goodwill

               

Intangibles, net

               

Property and equipment, net

     11,206          14,614    

Discontinued Operations:

     

Americas - Property and equipment, net

               

EMEA - Property and equipment, net

             1,183    

 

84


Table of Contents

The following table summarizes the total impairment losses related to nonrecurring fair value measurements of certain assets (no liabilities) subject to the requirements of ASC 820 (in thousands):

 

 

     Total Impairment (Losses)  
     Years Ended December 31,  
             2011                      2010                      2009          

Americas:

        

Goodwill (1)

     $         $         $ (629)   

Intangibles, net (1)

                     (1,279)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
                     (1,908)   

Investment in SHPS (2)

                     (2,089)   

Property and equipment, net (3)

     (1,244)         (3,121)           

EMEA:

        

Goodwill (3)

             (84)           

Intangibles, net (3)

             (278)           
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
             (362)           

Property and equipment, net (3) 

     (474)         (159)           
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     (1,718)         (3,642)         (3,997)   

Discontinued Operations:

        

Americas - Property and equipment, net (3), (4)

             (682)           

EMEA - Property and equipment, net (3), (4)

     (843)                   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ (2,561)         $ (4,324)         $ (3,997)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

  (1) 

See this Note 5 for additional information regarding the KLA fair value measurement.

  (2) 

See Note 1 for additional information regarding the SHPS fair value measurement.

  (3) 

See Note 1 for additional information regarding the fair value measurement.

  (4) 

See Note 3 for additional information regarding the impairments related to discontinued operations.

Impairment of Long-Lived Assets

During 2011, in connection with the Fourth Quarter 2011 Exit Plan, as discussed more fully in Note 4, Costs Associated with Exit or Disposal Activities, the Company recorded impairment charges of $0.5 million in the Americas segment and $0.5 million in the EMEA segment, related to the write-down of long-lived assets, primarily leasehold improvements and equipment.

During 2011, in connection with the Third Quarter 2010 Exit Plan within the Americas segment, as discussed more fully in Note 4, Costs Associated with Exit or Disposal Activities, the Company recorded an impairment charge of $0.7 million, resulting from a change in assumptions related to the redeployment of property and equipment.

During 2010, in connection with a plan to close and consolidate facilities within the EMEA segment, as discussed more fully in Note 4, Costs Associated with Exit or Disposal Activities, the Company recorded an impairment charge of $0.2 million, related to the impairment of long-lived assets for leasehold improvements and equipment in certain of its underutilized customer contact management centers in the United Kingdom and Ireland. In addition, during 2010, based on actual and forecasted operating results and deterioration of the related customer base in the Company’s United Kingdom operations, the EMEA segment recorded a $0.1 million impairment loss on goodwill and a $0.3 million impairment loss on intangibles (primarily customer relationships).

During 2010, in connection with a plan to close and consolidate facilities within the Americas segment, as discussed more fully in Note 4, Costs Associated with Exit or Disposal Activities, the Company recorded an impairment charge of $3.1 million, comprised of a $2.9 million impairment of long-lived assets for leasehold improvements in certain of its underutilized customer contact management centers in The Philippines and a $0.2 million impairment of long-lived assets for leasehold improvements related to a plan to consolidate corporate leased space in the United

 

85


Table of Contents

States.

During 2009, the Company committed to a plan to sell or close its Employee Assistance and Occupational Health operations in Calgary, Alberta, Canada, which was originally acquired on March 1, 2005 when the Company purchased the shares of Kelly, Luthmer & Associates Limited (“KLA”). As a result of KLA’s actual and forecasted operating results for 2009, deterioration of the KLA customer base and loss of key employees, the Company determined to sell or close the Calgary operations on or before December 31, 2009 for less than its current carrying value. This decline in value was other than temporary, therefore, the Company recorded a non-cash impairment loss of $1.3 million related to intangible assets (primarily customer relationships) and $0.6 million related to goodwill included in “Impairment loss on goodwill and intangibles” during 2009. The accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for 2009 includes “Impairment loss on goodwill and intangibles” of $1.9 million related to the Calgary operations (none in 2010 or 2008). As of December 31, 2010, $0.3 million and $0.2 million were included in “Other accrued expenses and current liabilities” and “Other long-term liabilities”, respectively, in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet related to the lease obligation, net of the underlying sublease amounts. This lease obligation is expected to be paid through the remainder of the lease term ending July 2012. In addition, in 2009, the Company paid $0.1 million in one-time employee termination benefits. The loss from operations for KLA for 2009 was $3.4 million, which was not material to the consolidated income from continuing operations; therefore, the results of operations of KLA have not been presented as discontinued operations in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations.

Additionally, during 2009 the Company recorded an impairment loss of $2.1 million on its investment in SHPS.

Note 6. Goodwill and Intangible Assets

The following table presents the Company’s purchased intangible assets as of December 31, 2011 (in thousands):

 

 

     Gross
Intangibles
     Accumulated
Amortization
     Net
Intangibles
     Weighted
Average
Amortization
Period (years)
 

Customer relationships

     $ 58,027           $ (14,056)         $ 43,971           8     

Trade name

     1,000           (639)         361           3     

Non-compete agreements

     560           (560)         -           1     

Proprietary software

     850           (710)         140           2     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    
     $         60,437           $         (15,965)         $         44,472           8     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

The following table presents the Company’s purchased intangible assets as of December 31, 2010 (in thousands):

 

 

     Gross
Intangibles
     Accumulated
Amortization
     Net
Intangibles
     Weighted
Average
Amortization
Period (years)
 

Customer relationships

     $ 58,471           $ (6,839)         $ 51,632           8     

Trade name

     1,000           (306)         694           3     

Non-compete agreements

     560           (513)         47           1     

Proprietary software

     850           (471)         379           2     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    
     $         60,881           $             (8,129)         $         52,752           8     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

The following table presents amortization expense, related to the purchased intangible assets resulting from acquisitions (other than goodwill), included in “General and administrative” costs in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations (in thousands):

 

 

2011 2011 2011
     Years Ended December 31,  
             2011                      2010                      2009          

Amortization expense

     $ 7,961           $ 7,879           $ 100     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

86


Table of Contents

The Company’s estimated future amortization expense for the succeeding years relating to the purchased intangible assets resulting from acquisitions completed prior to December 31, 2011, is as follows (in thousands):

 

 

Years Ending December 31,    Amount  

 

 

2012

   $         7,684     

2013

     7,285     

2014

     7,223     

2015

     7,220     

2016

     7,220     

2017 and thereafter

     7,840     

Changes in goodwill for the year ended December 31, 2011 consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

     Gross Amount      Accumulated
Impairment
Losses
     Net Amount  

Americas:

        

Balance at January 1, 2011

     $ 122,932          $ (629)         $ 122,303    

Foreign currency translation

     (961)                 (961)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Balance at December 31, 2011

     121,971          (629)         121,342    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

EMEA:

        

Balance at January 1, 2011

     84          (84)           

Foreign currency translation

                       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Balance at December 31, 2011

     84          (84)           
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 122,055          $ (713)         $         121,342    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Changes in goodwill for the year ended December 31, 2010 consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

     Gross Amount      Accumulated
Impairment
Losses
     Net Amount  

Americas:

        

Balance at January 1, 2010

     $ 21,838          $ (629)         $ 21,209    

Acquisition of ICT (See Note 2)

     97,683                  97,683    

Foreign currency translation

     3,411                  3,411    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Balance at December 31, 2010

     122,932          (629)         122,303    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

EMEA:

        

Balance at January 1, 2010

             -           

Acquisition of ICT (See Note 2)

     87          (87)           

Foreign currency translation

     (3)                   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Balance at December 31, 2010

     84          (84)           
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 123,016          $ (713)         $           122,303    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

See Note 5, Fair Value, for additional information regarding the impairment of the Americas and EMEA goodwill.

Note 7. Concentrations of Credit Risk

Financial instruments that potentially subject the Company to concentrations of credit risk consist principally of trade receivables. The Company’s credit concentrations are limited due to the wide variety of customers and markets in which the Company’s services are sold. See Note 12, Financial Derivatives, for a discussion of the Company’s credit risk relating to financial derivative instruments, and Note 27, Segments and Geographic Information, for a discussion of the Company’s customer concentration.

 

87


Table of Contents

Note 8. Receivables, Net

Receivables, net consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

     December 31,  
             2011                      2010          

Trade accounts receivable

     $ 227,512           $ 249,719     

Income taxes receivable

     3,853           1,488     

Other

     2,641           1,574     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     234,006           252,781     

Less: Allowance for doubtful accounts

     4,304           3,939     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $         229,702           $         248,842     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Allowance for doubtful accounts as a percent of trade receivables

     1.9%           1.6%     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Note 9. Prepaid Expenses

Prepaid expenses consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

     December 31,  
             2011                      2010          

Prepaid maintenance

     $ 4,191           $ 3,195     

Prepaid rent

     2,850           1,935     

Inventory, at cost

     508           1,706     

Prepaid insurance

     1,564           1,164     

Prepaid other

     2,427           2,704     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $         11,540           $             10,704     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Note 10. Other Current Assets

Other current assets consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

     December 31,  
             2011                      2010          

Deferred tax assets (Note 22)

     $ 8,044           $ 7,951     

Financial derivatives (Note 12)

     710           6,234     

Investments held in rabbi trust (Note 13)

     4,182           3,554     

Value added tax certificates (Note 11)

     2,386           2,030     

Other current assets

     4,798           3,144     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $         20,120           $             22,913     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Note 11. Value Added Tax Receivables

The VAT receivables balances, and the respective locations in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets, are presented below (in thousands):

 

 

     December 31,  
             2011                      2010          

VAT included in:

     

Other current assets (Note 10)

     $ 2,386           $ 2,030     

Deferred charges and other assets (Note 15)

     5,191           5,710     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $         7,577           $                 7,740     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

 

88


Table of Contents

During the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009, the Company wrote down the VAT receivables balances by the following amounts, which are reflected in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations (in thousands):

 

 

     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Write-down of value added tax receivables

     $     504           $     551           $     536     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Note 12. Financial Derivatives

Cash Flow Hedges – The Company had derivative assets and liabilities relating to outstanding forward contracts and options, designated as cash flow hedges, as defined under ASC 815, consisting of Philippine Peso contracts, Canadian Dollar contracts and Costa Rican Colones contracts. These contracts are entered into to protect against the risk that the eventual cash flows resulting from such transactions will be adversely affected by changes in exchange rates.

The deferred gains and related taxes on the Company’s derivative instruments recorded in “Accumulated other comprehensive income (loss)” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets are as follows (in thousands):

 

 

     December 31,  
     2011      2010  

Deferred gains (losses) in AOCI

     $     (670)         $     2,674    

Tax on deferred gains (losses) in AOCI

     232          (528)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Deferred gains (losses), net of taxes in AOCI

     $ (438)         $ 2,146    
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Deferred (losses) expected to be reclassified to “Revenues” from AOCI during the next twelve months

     $ (670)      
  

 

 

    

Deferred gains (losses) and other future reclassifications from AOCI will fluctuate with movements in the underlying market price of the forward contracts and options.

Net Investment Hedge – During 2010, the Company entered into foreign exchange forward contracts to hedge its net investment in a foreign operation, as defined under ASC 815, with an aggregate notional value of $26.1 million. These hedges settled in 2010 and the Company recorded deferred (losses) of $(2.6) million, net of taxes, for 2010 as a currency translation adjustment, a component of AOCI, offsetting foreign exchange losses attributable to the translation of the net investment. The Company did not hedge net investments in foreign operations during 2011.

Other Hedges – The Company also periodically enters into foreign currency hedge contracts that are not designated as hedges as defined under ASC 815. The purpose of these derivative instruments is to protect our interests against adverse foreign currency moves pertaining to intercompany receivables and payables, and other assets and liabilities that are denominated in currencies other than the Company’s subsidiaries functional currencies. These contracts generally do not exceed 90 days in duration.

 

89


Table of Contents

The Company had the following outstanding foreign currency forward contracts and options (in thousands):

 

 

$00000000.00 $00000000.00 $00000000.00 $00000000.00
     As of December 31, 2011      As of December 31, 2010  

Contract Type

   Notional
Amount in
USD
     Settle Through
Date
     Notional
Amount in
USD
     Settle Through
Date
 

Cash flow hedge: (1)

           

Options:

           

Philippine Pesos

   $ 85,500         September 2012       $ 81,100         December 2011   

Forwards:

           

Philippine Pesos

     12,000         March 2012         28,000         September 2011   

Canadian Dollars

     -         -         7,200         December 2011   

Costa Rican Colones

     30,000         September 2012         -         -   

Not designated as hedge: (2)

           

Forwards

     27,192         March 2012         57,791         February 2011   

 

(1)

Cash flow hedge as defined under ASC 815. Purpose is to protect against the risk that eventual cash flows resulting from such transactions will be adversely affected by changes in exchange rates.

(2)

Foreign currency hedge contract not designated as a hedge as defined under ASC 815. Purpose is to reduce the effects on the Company’s operating results and cash flows from fluctuations caused by volatility in currency exchange rates, primarily related to intercompany loan payments and cash held in non-functional currencies.

See Note 1, Overview and Summary of Significant Accounting Policies, for additional information on the Company’s purpose for entering into derivatives not designated as hedging instruments and its overall risk management strategies.

As of December 31, 2011, the maximum amount of loss due to credit risk that, based on the gross fair value of the financial instruments, the Company would incur if parties to the financial instruments that make up the concentration failed to perform according to the terms of the contracts is $0.7 million.

 

90


Table of Contents

The following tables present the fair value of the Company’s derivative instruments as of December 31, 2011 and 2010 included in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets (in thousands):

 

 

00000000 00000000 00000000 00000000
     Derivative Assets  
     December 31, 2011      December 31, 2010  
     Balance Sheet
Location
   Fair Value      Balance Sheet
Location
   Fair Value  

Derivatives designated as cash flow hedging

instruments under ASC 815:

           

Foreign currency forward contracts

   Other current
assets
     $ 530       Other current
assets
     $ 1,009   

Foreign currency options

   Other current
assets
     174       Other current
assets
     4,951   
     

 

 

       

 

 

 
        704            5,960   

Derivatives not designated as hedging

instruments under ASC 815:

           

Foreign currency forward contracts

   Other current
assets
     6       Other current
assets
     274   
     

 

 

       

 

 

 

Total derivative assets

        $ 710            $ 6,234   
     

 

 

       

 

 

 

 

00000000 00000000 00000000 00000000
     Derivative Liabilities  
     December 31, 2011      December 31, 2010  
     Balance Sheet
Location
   Fair Value      Balance Sheet
Location
   Fair Value  

Derivatives designated as cash flow hedging

instruments under ASC 815:

           

Foreign currency forward contracts

   Other accrued
expenses and
current liabilities
     $ -               Other accrued

expenses and
current

liabilities

     $      27   

Foreign currency options

   Other accrued
expenses and
current liabilities
     485            -           
     

 

 

       

 

 

 
        485            27   

Derivatives not designated as hedging

instruments under ASC 815:

           

Foreign currency forward contracts

   Other accrued
expenses and
current liabilities
     267       Other accrued
expenses and
current
liabilities
     708   
     

 

 

       

 

 

 

Total derivative liabilities

        $ 752            $ 735   
     

 

 

       

 

 

 

 

91


Table of Contents

The following tables present the effect of the Company’s derivative instruments for the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009 in the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements (in thousands):

 

 

     Gain (Loss) Recognized in AOCI
on Derivatives (Effective  Portion)
     Statement of
Operations
Location
   Gain (Loss) Reclassified From
Accumulated AOCI Into Income
(Effective Portion)
     Gain (Loss) Recognized in Income
on Derivatives (Ineffective  Portion)
 
     December 31,           December 31,      December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009           2011      2010      2009      2011      2010      2009  

Derivatives designated as cash flow hedging instruments under ASC 815:

                             

Foreign currency forward contracts

     $ 920          $ 2,586          $ 5,082        Revenues      $ 1,365          $ 4,515          $ (9,257)          $         $ -             $ -       

Foreign currency option contracts

     (2,403)         2,350          -           Revenues      488          658          -             -             -             -       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

       

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     (1,483)         4,936          5,082             1,853          5,173          (9,257)                 -             -       

Derivatives designated as a net investment hedge under ASC 815:

                             

Foreign currency forward contracts

     -             (3,955)         -                -             -             -             -             -             -       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

       

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ (1,483)         $ 981          $ 5,082             $ 1,853          $ 5,173          $ (9,257)         $         $ -             $ -       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

       

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

      Statement of  
  Operations  
  Location   
  Gain (Loss) Recognized in Income on
Derivatives
 
    December 31,  
    2011     2010     2009  

Derivatives not designated as hedging instruments under ASC 815:

       

Foreign currency forward contracts

  Other income
and (expense)
    $(1,444)        $(4,717)        $(1,928)   

Foreign currency forward contracts

  Revenues     -          -          (53)   
   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 
      $(1,444)        $(4,717)        $(1,981)   
   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Note 13. Investments Held in Rabbi Trusts

The Company’s investments held in rabbi trusts, classified as trading securities and included in “Other current assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets, at fair value, consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

    As of December 31, 2011     As of December 31, 2010  
        Cost             Fair Value             Cost             Fair Value      

Mutual funds

    $     3,938          $     4,182          $     3,058          $     3,436     

U.S. Treasury Bills (1)

    -          -          118          118     
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 
    $ 3,938          $ 4,182          $ 3,176          $ 3,554     
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

 

(1)

Matured in January 2011.

 

92


Table of Contents

The mutual funds held in the rabbi trusts were 67% equity-based and 33% debt-based as of December 31, 2011. Investment income, included in “Other income (expense)” in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations for the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009 consists of the following (in thousands):

 

 

         Years Ended December 31,      
             2011                  2010                      2009          

Gross realized gains from sale of trading securities

     $ 201          $ 54          $ 41       

Gross realized (losses) from sale of trading securities

     (20)         (5)         (21)      

Dividend and interest income

     69          37          46       

Net unrealized holding gains (losses)

     (383)         313          341       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net investment income (losses)

     $ (133)         $ 399         $ 407       
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Note 14. Property and Equipment

Property and equipment consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

         December 31,      
             2011                      2010          

Land

     $ 4,191           $ 4,381     

Buildings and leasehold improvements

     74,221           79,504     

Equipment, furniture and fixtures

     231,789           249,319     

Capitalized software development costs

     2,903           3,005     

Transportation equipment

     716           764     

Construction in progress

     1,479           1,911     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     315,299           338,884     

Less: Accumulated depreciation

     224,219           225,181     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 91,080           $ 113,703     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Depreciation expense included in “General and administrative” in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations for the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009 was as follows (in thousands):

 

 

         Years Ended December 31,      
             2011                      2010                      2009          

Depreciation expense

     $ 47,139           $ 47,902           $ 25,798     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Sale of Land and Building Located in Minot, North Dakota

On June 1, 2011, the Company sold the land and building located in Minot, North Dakota, which were held for sale, for cash of $3.9 million (net of selling costs of $0.2 million) resulting in a net gain on sale of $3.7 million. The carrying value of these assets of $0.8 million was offset by the related deferred grants of $0.6 million. The net gain on the sale of $3.7 million is included in “Net gain on disposal of property and equipment” in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for 2011. These assets, previously classified as held and used with a carrying value of $0.9 million, were included in “Property and equipment” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet as of December 31, 2010. Related to these assets were deferred grants of $0.6 million, which were included in “Deferred grants” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet as of December 31, 2010.

Tornado Damage to the Ponca City, Oklahoma Customer Contact Management Center

In April 2011, the customer contact management center (the “facility”) located in Ponca City, Oklahoma experienced significant damage to its building and contents as a result of a tornado. The Company filed an insurance claim with its property insurance company to recover losses of $1.4 million. During 2011, the insurance company paid $1.2 million to the Company for costs to clean up and repair the facility of $0.9 million and for reimbursement of a portion of the Company’s out-of-pocket costs of $0.3 million. The Company completed the repairs to the facility during 2011 and collected the remaining $0.2 million in February 2012.

 

93


Table of Contents

Typhoon Damage to the Marikina City, The Philippines Customer Contact Management Center

In September 2009, the building and contents of one of the Company’s customer contact management centers located in Marikina City, The Philippines (acquired as part of the ICT acquisition) was severely damaged by flooding from Typhoon Ondoy. Upon settlement with the insurer in November 2010, the Company recognized a net gain of $2.0 million in 2010. The damaged property and equipment had been written down by ICT prior to the ICT acquisition in February 2010. In August 2011, the Company received an additional $0.4 million from the insurer for rent payments made during the claim period and recognized a net gain on insurance settlement in 2011. This net gain on insurance settlement is included in “General and administrative” expenses in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations in 2011. No additional funds are expected.

Note 15. Deferred Charges and Other Assets

Deferred charges and other assets consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

     December 31,  
             2011                      2010          

Non-current deferred tax assets (Note 22)

     $ 20,389           $ 19,564     

Non-current value added tax certificates (Note 11)

     5,191           5,710     

Deposits

     2,278           5,118     

Other

     2,304           3,162     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 30,162           $ 33,554     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Note 16. Accrued Employee Compensation and Benefits

Accrued employee compensation and benefits consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

     December 31,  
             2011                      2010          

Accrued compensation

     $ 20,892           $ 27,063     

Accrued vacation

     13,965           13,700     

Accrued bonus and commissions

     12,566           11,227     

Accrued employment taxes

     9,757           10,061     

Other

     5,272           3,216     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 62,452           $ 65,267     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Note 17. Deferred Revenue

The components of deferred revenue consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

     December 31,  
             2011                      2010          

Future service

     $ 25,809           $ 23,919     

Estimated potential penalties and holdbacks

     8,510           7,336     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 34,319           $ 31,255     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

94


Table of Contents

Note 18. Other Accrued Expenses and Current Liabilities

Other accrued expenses and current liabilities consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

    December 31,  
            2011                     2010          

Accrued restructuring (Note 4)

    $       6,301          $       4,602     

Accrued legal and professional fees

    2,623          3,160     

Accrued telephone charges

    518          2,266     

Accrued roadside assistance claim costs

    1,691          1,980     

Accrued rent

    1,297          1,053     

Forward contracts (Note 12)

    267          735     

Option contracts (Note 12)

    485          -       

Other

    8,009          11,825     
 

 

 

   

 

 

 
    $       21,191          $       25,621     
 

 

 

   

 

 

 

Note 19. Deferred Grants

The components of deferred grants consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

    Years Ended December 31,  
            2011                     2010          

Property grants

    $       8,210          $       9,787     

Employment grants

    1,123          2,672     
 

 

 

   

 

 

 

Total deferred grants

    9,333          12,459     

Less: Property grants - short-term (1) 

    -            -       

Less: Employment grants - short-term (1)

    770          1,652     
 

 

 

   

 

 

 

Total long-term deferred grants (2) 

    $ 8,563          $ 10,807     
 

 

 

   

 

 

 

 

  (1)

Included in “Other accrued expenses and current liabilities” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets.

 

  (2)

Included in “Deferred grants” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets.

Amortization of the Company’s property grants included as a reduction to “General and administrative” costs and amortization of the Company’s employment grants included as a reduction to “Direct salaries and related costs” in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

    Years Ended December 31,  
            2011                     2010                     2009          

Amortization of property grants

    $       956          $       1,047          $       1,035     

Amortization of employment grants

    1,344          58          144     
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 
    $ 2,300          $ 1,105          $ 1,179     
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

 

95


Table of Contents

Note 20. Borrowings

The Company had no outstanding borrowings as of December 31, 2011 and 2010.

On February 2, 2010, the Company entered into a credit agreement (the “Credit Agreement”) with a group of lenders and KeyBank National Association, as Lead Arranger, Sole Book Runner and Administrative Agent (“KeyBank”). The Credit Agreement provides for a $75 million term loan (the “Term Loan”) and a $75 million revolving credit facility, the amount which is subject to certain borrowing limitations and includes certain customary financial and restrictive covenants. The Company drew down the full $75 million Term Loan on February 2, 2010 in connection with the acquisition of ICT on such date. See Note 2, Acquisition of ICT, for further information. The Company paid off the Term Loan balance in 2010, earlier than the scheduled maturity, plus accrued interest. The Term Loan is no longer available for borrowings.

The $75 million revolving credit facility provided under the Credit Agreement includes a $40 million multi-currency sub-facility, a $10 million swingline sub-facility and a $5 million letter of credit sub-facility, which may be used for general corporate purposes including strategic acquisitions, share repurchases, working capital support, and letters of credit, subject to certain limitations. The Company is not currently aware of any inability of its lenders to provide access to the full commitment of funds that exist under the revolving credit facility, if necessary. However, there can be no assurance that such facility will be available to the Company, even though it is a binding commitment of the financial institutions. The revolving credit facility will mature on February 1, 2013.

Borrowings under the Credit Agreement bear interest at either LIBOR or the base rate plus, in each case, an applicable margin based on the Company’s leverage ratio. The applicable interest rate is determined quarterly based on the Company’s leverage ratio at such time. The base rate is a rate per annum equal to the greatest of (i) the rate of interest established by KeyBank, from time to time, as its “prime rate”; (ii) the Federal Funds effective rate in effect from time to time, plus 1/2 of 1% per annum; and (iii) the then-applicable LIBOR rate for one month interest periods, plus 1.00%. Swingline loans bear interest only at the base rate plus the base rate margin. In addition, the Company is required to pay certain customary fees, including a commitment fee of up to 0.75%, which is due quarterly in arrears and calculated on the average unused amount of the revolving credit facility.

In 2010, the Company paid an underwriting fee of $3.0 million for the Credit Agreement, which is deferred and amortized over the term of the loan. In addition, the Company pays a quarterly commitment fee on the Credit Agreement. The related interest expense and amortization of deferred loan fees on the Credit Agreement of $1.2 million and $3.6 million are included in “Interest expense” in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations for the years ended December 31, 2011 and 2010, respectively (none in 2009). The $75 million Term Loan had a weighted average interest rate of 3.93% for the year ended December 31, 2010.

The Credit Agreement is guaranteed by all of the Company’s existing and future direct and indirect material U.S. subsidiaries and secured by a pledge of 100% of the non-voting and 65% of the voting capital stock of all the direct foreign subsidiaries of the Company and those of the guarantors.

In December 2009, Sykes (Bermuda) Holdings Limited, a Bermuda exempted company (“Sykes Bermuda”) which is an indirect wholly-owned subsidiary of the Company, entered into a credit agreement with KeyBank (the “Bermuda Credit Agreement”). The Bermuda Credit Agreement provided for a $75 million short-term loan to Sykes Bermuda with a maturity date of March 31, 2010. Sykes Bermuda drew down the full $75 million on December 11, 2009. The Bermuda Credit Agreement required that Sykes Bermuda and its direct subsidiaries maintain cash and cash equivalents of at least $80 million until the loan was repaid in its entirety. Interest was charged on outstanding amounts, at the option of Sykes Bermuda, at either a Eurodollar Rate (as defined in the Bermuda Credit Agreement) or a Base Rate (as defined in the Bermuda Credit Agreement) plus, in each case, an applicable margin specified in the Bermuda Credit Agreement. The underwriting fee paid of $0.8 million was deferred and amortized over the term of the loan. Sykes Bermuda repaid the entire outstanding amount plus accrued interest on March 31, 2010. The related interest expense and amortization of deferred loan fees of $1.4 million and $0.3 million are included in “Interest expense” in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for the years ended December 31, 2010 and 2009, respectively (none in 2011).

 

96


Table of Contents

Note 21. Accumulated Other Comprehensive Income (Loss)

The Company presents data in the Consolidated Statements of Changes in Shareholders’ Equity in accordance with ASC 220 (“ASC 220”) “Comprehensive Income”. ASC 220 establishes rules for the reporting of comprehensive income (loss) and its components. The components of accumulated other comprehensive income (loss) consist of the following (in thousands):

 

 

    Foreign
Currency
Translation
Adjustment
    Unrealized
(Loss) on Net
Investment
Hedge
    Unrealized
Actuarial Gain
(Loss) Related
to Pension
Liability
    Unrealized
Gain (Loss) on
Cash Flow
Hedging
Instruments
    Unrealized
Gain (Loss) on
Post
Retirement
Obligation
    Total  

Balance at January 1, 2009

    $ (4,236)        $        $ 1,387         $ (7,834)        $        $ (10,683)   

Pre-tax amount

    8,360                (279)        5,082         307         13,470    

Tax (provision) benefit

                  121         (4,255)               (4,134)   

Reclassification to net income

                  (63)        9,257         (31)        9,166    

Foreign currency translation

    190                41         (231)                 
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Balance at December 31, 2009

    4,317                1,207         2,019         276         7,819    

Pre-tax amount

    9,790        (3,955)        (31)        4,936         104         10,844    

Tax benefit

           1,390                321                1,711    

Reclassification to net loss

    (7)               (52)        (5,173)        (34)        (5,266)   

Foreign currency translation

    (108)               65         43                  
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Balance at December 31, 2010

    13,992         (2,565)        1,189         2,146         346         15,108    

Pre-tax amount

    (7,613)               (184)        (1,482)        153         (9,126)   

Tax benefit

                  34         759                793    

Reclassification to net income

    (389)               (55)        (1,855)        (40)        (2,339)   

Foreign currency translation

                         (6)                 
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Balance at December 31, 2011

  $ 5,995         $ (2,565)        $ 985         $ (438)        $ 459         $ 4,436    
 

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

Except as discussed in Note 22, Income Taxes, earnings associated with the Company’s investments in its subsidiaries are considered to be permanently invested and no provision for income taxes on those earnings or translation adjustments have been provided.

Note 22. Income Taxes

The income (loss) from continuing operations before income taxes includes the following components (in thousands):

 

 

     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Domestic (U.S., state and local)

     $ (14,170)       $ (24,662)       $ 439    

Foreign

     77,826          52,974          70,346    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total income from continuing operations before income taxes

     $ 63,656        $ 28,312        $ 70,785    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

97


Table of Contents

Significant components of the income tax provision are as follows (in thousands):

 

 

00000000 00000000 00000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Current:

        

U.S. federal

     $   (3,446)         $ 4,836          $ 1,406    

State and local

             (24)           

Foreign

     18,743          14,527          14,547    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total current provision for income taxes

     15,297          19,339          15,953    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Deferred:

        

U.S. federal

     148          (15,160)         11,791    

State and local

     143          (314)         158    

Foreign

     (4,246)         (1,668)         (1,784)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total deferred provision (benefit) for income taxes

     (3,955)         (17,142)         10,165    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total provision for income taxes

     $ 11,342          $ 2,197          $ 26,118    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

The temporary differences that give rise to significant portions of the deferred income tax provision (benefit) are as follows (in thousands):

 

 

00000000 00000000 00000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Accrued expenses/liabilities

     $   (31,111)         $ (25,358)         $ 14,831    

Net operating loss and tax credit carryforwards

     47,849          7,158          2,989    

Depreciation and amortization

     (2,083)         (3,433)         (863)   

Deferred revenue

             (580)         (722)   

Deferred statutory income

     (839)                 474    

Valuation allowance

     (17,779)         5,028          (6,608)   

Other

             43          64    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total deferred provision (benefit) for income taxes

     $ (3,955)         $ (17,142)         $ 10,165    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

The reconciliation of the income tax provision computed at the U.S. federal statutory tax rate to the Company’s effective income tax provision is as follows (in thousands):

 

 

00000000 00000000 00000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Tax at U.S. federal statutory tax rate

     $ 22,280          $ 9,909          $ 24,775    

State income taxes, net of federal tax benefit

     143          (333)         158    

Tax holidays

     (7,532)         (6,798)         (13,841)   

Change in valuation allowance, net of related adjustments

     610          3,328          (4,473)   

Foreign rate differential

     (5,765)         (3,875)         (7,499)   

Changes in uncertain tax positions

     (2,748)         (3,830)         594    

Permanent differences

     915          985          6,529    

Foreign withholding and other taxes

     4,546          3,207          4,048    

Change of assertion related to foreign earnings distribution

     (255)         (1,865)         16,281    

Tax credits

     (852)         1,469          (454)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total provision for income taxes

     $   11,342          $ 2,197          $ 26,118    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

The Company changed its intent to distribute current earnings from various foreign operations to their foreign parents to take advantage of the December 2011 extension of tax provisions of Internal Revenue Code Section 954(c)(6). These tax provisions permit continued tax deferral on such distributions that would otherwise be taxable immediately in the United States. While the distributions are not taxable in the United States, related withholding taxes of $2.7 million are included in the provision for income taxes in the Consolidated Statement of Operations for 2011.

 

98


Table of Contents

In addition, the Company changed its intent to distribute all of the current year and future years’ earnings of a non-U.S. subsidiary to its foreign parent. Withholding taxes of $0.9 million related to this distribution are included in the provision for income taxes in the Consolidated Statement of Operations for 2011.

In connection with the Company’s borrowing of a $75 million Term Loan on February 2, 2010, related to the ICT acquisition, the Company was deemed to have changed its intent regarding the permanent reinvestment of $85.0 million of foreign subsidiaries’ accumulated and undistributed earnings. Accordingly, a net deferred tax provision of $14.7 million was recorded in 2009. Of the $85.0 million change of intent, $50.0 million was distributed in 2010 and the remaining $35.0 million was distributed in 2011 and the related deferred tax liability was realized.

Except as previously mentioned, a provision for income taxes has not been made for the undistributed earnings of foreign subsidiaries of approximately $333.1 million at December 31, 2011, as the earnings are permanently reinvested in foreign business operations. Determination of any unrecognized deferred tax liability for temporary differences related to investments in foreign subsidiaries that are essentially permanent in nature is not practicable.

The Company has been granted tax holidays in The Philippines, Costa Rica, El Salvador and India. The tax holidays have various expiration dates ranging from 2012 through 2023. In some cases, the tax holidays expire without possibility of renewal. In other cases, we expect to renew these tax holidays, but there are no assurances from the respective foreign governments that they will renew them. This could potentially result in future adverse tax consequences. The Company’s tax holidays decreased the provision for income taxes by $7.5 million ($0.17 per diluted share), $6.8 million ($0.15 per diluted share) and $13.8 million ($0.34 per diluted share) for the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009, respectively.

Deferred income taxes reflect the net tax effects of temporary differences between the carrying amount of assets and liabilities for financial reporting purposes and the amounts used for income taxes. The temporary differences that give rise to significant portions of the deferred tax assets and liabilities are presented below (in thousands):

 

 

00000000000 00000000000
     December 31,  
     2011      2010  

Deferred tax assets:

     

Accrued expenses

     $ 21,313          $ 22,707    

Net operating loss and tax credit carryforwards

     50,525          83,914    

Depreciation and amortization

     2,111          3,346    

Deferred revenue

     5,017          4,161    

Valuation allowance

     (38,544)         (60,091)   

Other

               
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     40,428          54,037    
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Deferred tax liabilities:

     

Accrued liabilities

     (643)         (16,691)   

Depreciation and amortization

     (14,983)         (18,221)   

Deferred statutory income

     (1,984)         (836)   

Other

     (25)         (24)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     (17,635)         (35,772)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net deferred tax assets

     $ 22,793          $ 18,265    
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

 

00000000000 00000000000
     December 31,  
     2011      2010  

Classified as follows:

     

Other current assets (Note 10)

     $ 8,044          $ 7,951    

Deferred charges and other assets (Note 15)

     20,389          19,564    

Current deferred income tax liabilities

     (663)         (3,347)   

Other long-term liabilities

     (4,977)         (5,903)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net deferred tax assets

     $ 22,793          $ 18,265    
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

In 2011, the Company’s valuation allowance decreased by $21.5 million, primarily related to the write-off of tax benefits resulting from the closure of the United Kingdom operations under the Fourth Quarter 2010 Exit Plan, the liquidation of inactive subsidiaries and the reclassification of Spain as held for sale in the accompanying

 

99


Table of Contents

Consolidated Balance Sheet as of December 31, 2011.

There are approximately $298.9 million of income tax loss carryforwards as of December 31, 2011 with varying expiration dates, approximately $132.9 million relating to foreign operations and $166.0 million relating to U.S. state operations. For U.S. federal purposes, $14.9 million of tax credits are available for carryforward as of December 31, 2011, with the latest expiration date ending December 31, 2032. Regarding the U.S. state operations, no benefit has been recognized for the $166.0 million as it is more likely than not that these losses will expire without realization of tax benefits. With respect to foreign operations, $106.6 million of the net operating loss carryforwards have an indefinite expiration date and the remaining $26.3 million net operating loss carryforwards have varying expiration dates through December 2020.

As of December 31, 2011, the Company had $17.1 million of unrecognized tax benefits, a net decrease of $3.9 million from $21.0 million as of December 31, 2010. This decrease results primarily from the expiration of statutes of limitations on certain foreign subsidiaries and the resolution of a tax audit in the current year. Had the Company recognized these tax benefits, approximately $17.1 million and $21.0 million and the related interest and penalties would favorably impact the effective tax rate in 2011 and 2010, respectively. The Company believes it is reasonably possible that its unrecognized tax benefits will decrease or be recognized in the next twelve months by up to $0.6 million due to expiration of statutes of limitations, audit or appeal resolution in various tax jurisdictions.

The Company recognizes interest and penalties related to unrecognized tax benefits in the provision for income taxes. The Company had $10.2 million and $10.2 million accrued for interest and penalties as of December 31, 2011 and 2010, respectively. Of the accrued interest and penalties at December 31, 2011 and 2010, $3.8 million and $4.1 million, respectively, relate to statutory penalties. The amount of interest and penalties, net, recognized in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations for 2010 and 2009 was $(0.4) million and $0.2 million, respectively (none in 2011).

The tabular reconciliation of the amounts of unrecognized net tax benefits is presented below (in thousands):

 

 

000000000000 000000000000 000000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Gross unrecognized tax benefits as of January 1,

     $ 21,036          $ 3,810          $ 3,358    

Prior period tax position increases (decreases) (1)

             19,287          458    

Decreases from settlements with tax authorities

     (3,076)         (1,283)           

Decreases due to lapse in applicable statute of limitations

     (346)         (2,104)         (120)   

Foreign currency translation increases (decreases)

     (478)         1,326          114    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Gross unrecognized tax benefits as of December 31,

     $ 17,136          $ 21,036          $ 3,810    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

(1)

Includes amounts assumed upon acquisition of ICT on February 2, 2010.

The Company is currently under audit in several tax jurisdictions. However, the only significant jurisdictions currently under audit are Canada and The Philippines. The Company is under audit in Canada for tax years 2003 through 2009. In The Philippines, the Company is being audited for tax years 2007 through 2010. Although the outcome of examinations by taxing authorities is always uncertain, the Company believes it is adequately reserved for these audits and that resolutions of them are not expected to have a material impact on its financial condition and results of operations.

The Company and its subsidiaries file federal, state and local income tax returns as required in the U.S. and in various foreign tax jurisdictions. The following table presents the major tax jurisdictions and tax years that are open and subject to examination by the respective tax authorities as of December 31, 2011:

 

 

Tax Jurisdiction    Tax Year Ended

 

Canada

   2003 to present

Philippines

   2007 to present

United States

   1997 to 1999 (1) , 2002-2007 (1) and 2008 to present

(1)  These tax years are open to the extent of the net operating loss carryforward amount.

 

100


Table of Contents

Note 23. Earnings Per Share

Basic earnings per share are based on the weighted average number of common shares outstanding during the periods. Diluted earnings per share includes the weighted average number of common shares outstanding during the respective periods and the further dilutive effect, if any, from stock options, stock appreciation rights, restricted stock, restricted stock units, common stock units and shares held in a rabbi trusts using the treasury stock method.

The numbers of shares used in the earnings per share computation are as follows (in thousands):

 

 

00000000000 00000000000 00000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Basic:

        

Weighted average common shares outstanding

     45,506           46,030           40,707     

Diluted:

        

Dilutive effect of stock options, stock appreciation rights, restricted stock, restricted stock units, common stock units and shares held in a rabbi trust

     101           103           319     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total weighted average diluted shares outstanding

     45,607           46,133           41,026     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Anti-dilutive shares excluded from the diluted earnings per share calculation

     315           153           79     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

On August 18, 2011, the Company’s Board authorized the Company to purchase up to 5.0 million shares of its outstanding common stock (the “2011 Share Repurchase Program”). A total of 2.5 million shares have been repurchased under the 2011 Share Repurchase Program since inception. The shares are purchased, from time to time, through open market purchases or in negotiated private transactions, and the purchases are based on factors, including but not limited to, the stock price and general market conditions. The 2011 Share Repurchase Program has no expiration date. The Company’s Board previously authorized the Company on August 5, 2002 to purchase up to 3.0 million shares of its outstanding common stock, of which all available shares have been repurchased.

The shares repurchased during the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009 were as follows (in thousands, except per share amounts):

 

 

0000000000000000000 0000000000000000000 0000000000000000000 0000000000000000000
    

Total Number

of Shares

Repurchased

                   Total Cost  of
Shares
Repurchased
 
        Range of Prices Paid Per Share     
For the Years Ended       Low      High     

 

          

December 31, 2011

     3,292         $ 12.46           $ 18.53           $ 49,993     

December 31, 2010

     300         $ 16.92           $ 17.60           $ 5,212     

December 31, 2009

     200         $ 13.72           $ 14.75           $ 3,193     

Note 24. Commitments and Loss Contingency

Lease and Purchase Commitments

The Company leases certain equipment and buildings under operating leases having original terms ranging from one to twenty-five years, some with options to cancel at varying points during the lease. The building leases contain up to two five-year renewal options. Rental expense under operating leases was as follows (in thousands):

 

 

0000000000000 0000000000000 0000000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Rental expense

     $ 43,147           $ 50,846           $ 21,810     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

101


Table of Contents

The following is a schedule of future minimum rental payments required under operating leases that have noncancelable lease terms as of December 31, 2011 (in thousands):

 

 

000000000000000
     Amount  

 

 

2012

     25,338     

2013

     8,209     

2014

     4,669     

2015

     3,837     

2016

     3,548     

2017 and thereafter

     8,654     
  

 

 

 

Total minimum payments required

     $         54,255     
  

 

 

 

The Company enters into agreements with third-party vendors in the ordinary course of business whereby the Company commits to purchase goods and services used in its normal operations. These agreements, which are not cancelable, generally range from one to five year periods and contain fixed or minimum annual commitments. Certain of these agreements allow for renegotiation of the minimum annual commitments based on certain conditions.

The following is a schedule of future minimum purchases remaining under the agreements as of December 31, 2011 (in thousands):

 

 

000000000000000
     Amount  

 

 

2012

     $         15,450     

2013

     7,847     

2014

     362     

2015

     -     

2016

     -     

2017 and thereafter

     -     
  

 

 

 

Total minimum payments required

     $         23,659     
  

 

 

 

Indemnities, Commitments and Guarantees

From time to time, during the normal course of business, the Company may make certain indemnities, commitments and guarantees under which it may be required to make payments in relation to certain transactions. These include, but are not limited to: (i) indemnities to clients, vendors and service providers pertaining to claims based on negligence or willful misconduct of the Company and (ii) indemnities involving breach of contract, the accuracy of representations and warranties of the Company, or other liabilities assumed by the Company in certain contracts. In addition, the Company has agreements whereby it will indemnify certain officers and directors for certain events or occurrences while the officer or director is, or was, serving at the Company’s request in such capacity. The indemnification period covers all pertinent events and occurrences during the officer’s or director’s lifetime. The maximum potential amount of future payments the Company could be required to make under these indemnification agreements is unlimited; however, the Company has director and officer insurance coverage that limits its exposure and enables it to recover a portion of any future amounts paid. The Company believes the applicable insurance coverage is generally adequate to cover any estimated potential liability under these indemnification agreements. The majority of these indemnities, commitments and guarantees do not provide for any limitation of the maximum potential for future payments the Company could be obligated to make. The Company has not recorded any liability for these indemnities, commitments and guarantees in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets. In addition, the Company has some client contracts that do not contain contractual provisions for the limitation of liability, and other client contracts that contain agreed upon exceptions to limitation of liability. The Company has not recorded any liability in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets with respect to any client contracts under which the Company has or may have unlimited liability.

Loss Contingency

The Company has previously disclosed pending matters involving regulatory sanctions assessed against the

 

102


Table of Contents

Company’s Spanish subsidiary, which is classified as discontinued operations. All of these matters relate to the alleged inappropriate acquisition of personal information in connection with two outbound client contracts. Based upon the opinion of legal counsel regarding the likely outcome of these matters, the Company accrued a $1.3 million liability under ASC 450 “Contingencies” because management believed that a loss was probable and the amount of the loss could be reasonably estimated. Due to the favorable rulings by the Spanish Supreme Court, the Company reversed $0.4 million and $0.5 million of the accrued liability during the years ended December 31, 2011 and 2010, respectively. The remaining accrued liability of $0.4 million is included in “Liabilities held for sale – discontinued operations” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet at December 31, 2011. As of December 31, 2010, the accrued liability of $0.8 million was included in “Other accrued expenses and current liabilities” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheet. The final claim was finally decided against the Company on procedural grounds, but subsequent to year end, the assessed fine associated with that claim was settled at no cost to the Company.

In connection with the appeal of one of these claims, the Company issued a bank guarantee, which is included as restricted cash of $0.4 million in “Deferred charges and other assets” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets as of December 31, 2010. Due to the favorable ruling by the Spanish Supreme Court mentioned above, the Company released the bank guarantee during the three months ended December 31, 2011.

The Company from time to time is involved in other legal actions arising in the ordinary course of business. With respect to these matters, management believes that it has adequate legal defenses and/or when possible and appropriate, provided adequate accruals related to those matters such that the ultimate outcome will not have a material adverse effect on the Company’s financial position or results of operations.

Note 25. Defined Benefit Pension Plan and Postretirement Benefits

Defined Benefit Pension Plans

The Company sponsors two non-contributory defined benefit pension plans (the “Pension Plans”) for its covered employees in The Philippines. The Pension Plans provide defined benefits based on years of service and final salary. All permanent employees meeting the minimum service requirement are eligible to participate in the Pension Plans. As of December 31, 2011, the Pension Plans were unfunded. The Company expects to make cash contributions to its Pension Plans during 2012 of less than $0.1 million.

The following tables provide a reconciliation of the change in the benefit obligation for the Pension Plans and the net amount recognized, included in “Other long-term liabilities”, in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets (in thousands):

 

 

0000000000000 0000000000000
     December 31,  
     2011      2010  

Beginning benefit obligation

     $ 1,345          $ 731    

Service cost

     237          272    

Interest cost

     102          90    

Actuarial gains

     184          31    

Benefit obligation assumed with acquisition of ICT

             174    

Effect of foreign currency translation

     (8)         47    
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Ending benefit obligation

     $ 1,860          $ 1,345   
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Unfunded status

     (1,860)         (1,345)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net amount recognized

     $ (1,860)         $ (1,345)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Weighted average actuarial assumptions used to determine the benefit obligations and net periodic benefit cost for the Pension Plans were as follows:

 

 

0000000000000 0000000000000 0000000000000
     Years Ended December 31,
     2011    2010    2009

Discount rate

   6.3%    8.3%    9.1%

Rate of compensation increase

   3.2%    3.2%    7.0%

 

103


Table of Contents

The Company evaluates these assumptions on a periodic basis taking into consideration current market conditions and historical market data. The discount rate is used to calculate expected future cash flows at a present value on the measurement date, which is December 31. This rate represents the market rate for high-quality fixed income investments. A lower discount rate would increase the present value of benefit obligations. Other assumptions include demographic factors such as retirement, mortality and turnover.

The following table provides information about the net periodic benefit cost and other accumulated comprehensive income for the Pension Plans (in thousands):

 

 

000000000000 000000000000 000000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Service cost

     $ 237          $ 272          $ 63    

Interest cost

     102          90          36    

Recognized actuarial (gains)

     (55)         (51)         (61)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Net periodic benefit cost

     284          311          38    

Unrealized net actuarial (gains), net of tax

     (985)         (1,189)         (1,207)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total amount recognized in net periodic benefit cost and other accumulated comprehensive income (loss)

     $ (701)         $ (878)         $ (1,169)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

The estimated future benefit payments, which reflect expected future service, as appropriate, are as follows (in thousands):

 

 

00000000000
Years Ending December 31,    Amount  

 

 

2012

     $ 20     

2013

     7     

2014

     9     

2015

     40     

2016

     159     

2017 - 2021

     1,170     

The Company expects to recognize less than $0.1 million of net actuarial gains as a component of net periodic benefit cost in 2012.

Employee Retirement Savings Plans

The Company maintains a 401(k) plan covering defined employees who meet established eligibility requirements. Under the plan provisions, the Company matches 50% of participant contributions to a maximum matching amount of 2% of participant compensation. The Company’s contributions included in the accompanying Consolidated Statement of Operations were as follows (in thousands):

 

 

000000000000 000000000000 000000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011     2010     2009  

401(k) plan contributions

     $ 953          $ 757          $ 998     
  

 

 

   

 

 

   

 

 

 

In connection with the acquisition of ICT in February 2010, the Company assumed ICT’s profit sharing plan (Section 401(k)). Under this profit sharing plan, the Company matches 50% of employee contributions for all qualified employees, as defined, up to a maximum of 6% of the employee’s compensation; however, it may also make additional contributions to the plan based upon profit levels and other factors. No contributions were made during the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010, and 2009, respectively. Employees are fully vested in their contributions, while full vesting in the Company’s contributions occurs upon death, disability, retirement or completion of five years of service.

 

104


Table of Contents

Split-Dollar Life Insurance Arrangement

In 1996, the Company entered into a split-dollar life insurance arrangement to benefit the former Chairman and Chief Executive Officer of the Company. Under the terms of the arrangement, the Company retained a collateral interest in the policy to the extent of the premiums paid by the Company. The postretirement benefit obligation included in “Other long-term liabilities” and the unrealized gain included in “Accumulated other comprehensive income” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets were as follows (in thousands):

 

 

000000000000 000000000000
     December 31,  
     2011      2010  

Postretirement benefit obligation

     $ 114           $ 186     

Unrealized gain in AOCI (1)

     459           346     

 

(1)

Unrealized gain is due to changes in discount rates related to the postretirement obligation.

Post-Retirement Defined Contribution Healthcare Plan

On January 1, 2005, the Company established a Post-Retirement Defined Contribution Healthcare Plan for eligible employees meeting certain service and age requirements. The plan is fully funded by the participants and accordingly, the Company does not recognize expense relating to the plan.

Note 26. Stock-Based Compensation

The Company’s stock-based compensation plans include the 2011 Equity Incentive Plan, the 2004 Non-Employee Director Fee Plan and the Deferred Compensation Plan.

The following table summarizes the stock-based compensation expense (primarily in the Americas), income tax benefits related to the stock-based compensation and excess tax benefits (provision) (in thousands):

 

 

000000000000 000000000000 000000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011     2010     2009  

Stock-based compensation expense (1) 

     $ 3,582        $ 4,935        $ 5,158   

Income tax (benefit) (2)

     (1,397     (1,925     (2,012

Excess tax (benefit) provision from the exercise of stock options (3)

     8        (354     (878

 

(1)

Included in “General and administrative” costs in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations.

(2)

Included in “Income taxes” in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations.

(3)

Included in “Additional paid-in capital” in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Changes in Shareholder’s Equity.

There were no capitalized stock-based compensation costs at December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009.

2011 Equity Incentive Plan The Board adopted the Sykes Enterprises, Incorporated 2011 Equity Incentive Plan (the “2011 Plan”) on March 23, 2011. The Board subsequently amended the 2011 Plan on May 11, 2011 to reduce the number of shares of common stock available under the 2011 Plan from 5.7 million shares to 4.0 million shares. The 2011 Plan was approved by the shareholders at the May 2011 Annual Meeting. The 2011 Plan replaced and superseded the Company’s 2001 Equity Incentive Plan (the “2001 Plan”), which expired on March 14, 2011. The outstanding awards granted under the 2001 Plan will remain in effect until their exercise, expiration, or termination. The 2011 Plan permits the grant of stock options, stock appreciation rights and other stock-based awards to certain employees of the Company, and certain non-employees who provide services to the Company in order to encourage them to remain in the employment of or to faithfully provide services to the Company and to increase their interest in the Company’s success.

Stock OptionsOptions are granted at fair market value on the date of the grant and generally vest over one to four years. All options granted under the Plan expire if not exercised by the tenth anniversary of their grant date. The fair value of each stock option award is estimated on the date of grant using the Black-Scholes valuation model that uses various assumptions. The fair value of the stock option awards is expensed on a straight-line basis over the vesting period of the award. Expected volatility is based on historical volatility of the Company’s stock. The risk-free rate

 

105


Table of Contents

for periods within the contractual life of the award is based on the yield curve of a zero-coupon U.S. Treasury bond on the date the award is granted with a maturity equal to the expected term of the award. Exercises and forfeitures are estimated within the valuation model using employee termination and other historical data. The expected term of the stock option awards granted is derived from historical exercise experience under the Plan and represents the period of time that stock option awards granted are expected to be outstanding.

The following table summarizes stock option activity as of December 31, 2011 and for the year then ended:

 

 

Stock Options    Shares (000s)      Weighted
Average
Exercise Price
     Weighted
Average
Remaining
Contractual
Term (in
years)
     Aggregate
Intrinsic
Value (000s)
 

 

 

Outstanding at January 1, 2011

     43          $ 8.54           

Granted

             $ -           

Exercised

     (33)         $ 9.33           

Forfeited or expired

             $ -           
  

 

 

          

Outstanding at December 31, 2011

     10          $ 5.89           1.6           $ 98     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Vested or expected to vest at December 31, 2011

     10          $ 5.89           1.6           $ 98     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Exercisable at December 31, 2011

     10          $ 5.89           1.6           $ 98     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

No stock options were granted during the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009.

The following table summarizes information regarding the exercise of stock options (in thousands):

 

 

00000000000 00000000000 00000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Number of stock options exercised

     33           3           259     

Intrinsic value of stock options exercised

     $ 165           $ 33           $ 2,609     

Cash received upon exercise of stock options

     $ 311           $ 11           $ 3,327     

All options were fully vested as of December 31, 2006 and there is no unrecognized compensation cost as of December 31, 2011 related to the options (the effect of estimated forfeitures is not material).

Stock Appreciation RightsThe Company’s Board of Directors, at the recommendation of the Compensation and Human Resource Development Committee (the “Committee”), approves awards of stock-settled stock appreciation rights (“SARs”) for eligible participants. SARs represent the right to receive, without payment to the Company, a certain number of shares of common stock, as determined by the Committee, equal to the amount by which the fair market value of a share of common stock at the time of exercise exceeds the grant price.

The SARs are granted at the fair market value of the Company’s common stock on the date of the grant and vest one-third on each of the first three anniversaries of the date of grant, provided the participant is employed by the Company on such date. The SARs have a term of 10 years from the date of grant. In the event of a change in control, the SARs will vest on the date of the change in control, provided that the participant is employed by the Company on the date of the change in control.

The SARs are exercisable within three months after the death, disability, retirement or termination of the participant’s employment with the Company, if and to the extent the SARs were exercisable immediately prior to such termination. If the participant’s employment is terminated for cause, or the participant terminates his or her own employment with the Company, any portion of the SARs not yet exercised (whether or not vested) terminates immediately on the date of termination of employment.

The fair value of each SAR is estimated on the date of grant using the Black-Scholes valuation model that uses various assumptions. The fair value of the SARs is expensed on a straight-line basis over the requisite service period. Expected volatility is based on the historical volatility of the Company’s stock. The risk-free rate for periods within the contractual life of the award is based on the yield curve of a zero-coupon U.S. Treasury bond on the date

 

106


Table of Contents

the award is granted with a maturity equal to the expected term of the award. Exercises and forfeitures are estimated within the valuation model using employee termination and other historical data. The expected term of the SARs granted represents the period of time the SARs are expected to be outstanding.

The following table summarizes the assumptions used to estimate the fair value of SARs granted:

 

 

0000000000000 0000000000000 0000000000000
     Years Ended December 31,
               2011                       2010                    2009        

Expected volatility

             44.3%              45.2%              46.8%

Weighted average volatility

             44.3%              45.2%              46.8%

Expected dividend rate

               0.0%                0.0%                0.0%

Expected term (in years)

               4.6                4.4                4.0

Risk-free rate

               2.0%                2.4%                1.3%

The following table summarizes SARs activity as of December 31, 2011 and for the year then ended:

 

 

Stock Appreciation Rights    Shares (000s)      Weighted
Average
Exercise Price
     Weighted
Average
Remaining
Contractual
Term (in
years)
     Aggregate
Intrinsic
Value (000s)
 

 

 

Outstanding at January 1, 2011

     442         $ -           

Granted

     215         $ -           

Exercised

     -         $ -           

Forfeited or expired

     -         $ -           
  

 

 

          

Outstanding at December 31, 2011

     657         $ -           7.6           $ 29     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Vested or expected to vest at December 31, 2011

     657         $ -           7.6           $ 29     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Exercisable at December 31, 2011

     296         $ -           6.4           $ 29     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

The following table summarizes the weighted average grant-date fair value of the SARs granted and the total intrinsic value of the SARs exercised (in thousands, except per SAR amounts):

 

 

000000000000 000000000000 000000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
               2011                         2010                      2009          

Weighted average grant-date fair value per SAR

     $   7.10           $   10.21           $ 7.42     

Intrinsic value of SARs exercised

     $ -           $ 591           $   1,108     

The following table summarizes the status of nonvested SARs as of December 31, 2011 and for the year then ended:

 

 

Nonvested Stock Appreciation Rights    Shares (000s)      Weighted
Average Grant-
Date Fair
Value
 

 

 

Nonvested at January 1, 2011

     293          $   8.63     

Granted

     215          $ 7.10     

Vested

     (146)         $ 8.18     

Forfeited or expired

             $ -     
  

 

 

    

Nonvested at December 31, 2011

     362          $ 7.90     
  

 

 

    

As of December 31, 2011, there was $1.7 million of total unrecognized compensation cost, net of estimated forfeitures, related to nonvested SARs granted under the Plan. This cost is expected to be recognized over a weighted average period of 1.7 years. SARs that vested during 2010 had a fair value of $0.6 million as of the vesting date (no fair value related to the vested shares in 2011 and 2009).

 

107


Table of Contents

Restricted SharesThe Company’s Board of Directors, at the recommendation of the Committee, approves awards of performance and employment-based restricted shares (“Restricted Shares”) for eligible participants. In some instances, where the issuance of Restricted Shares has adverse tax consequences to the recipient, the Board will instead issue restricted stock units (“RSUs”). The Restricted Shares are shares of the Company’s common stock (or in the case of RSUs, represent an equivalent number of shares of the Company’s common stock) which are issued to the participant subject to (a) restrictions on transfer for a period of time and (b) forfeiture under certain conditions. The performance goals, including revenue growth and income from operations targets, provide a range of vesting possibilities from 0% to 100% and will be measured at the end of the performance period. If the performance conditions are met for the performance period, the shares will vest and all restrictions on the transfer of the Restricted Shares will lapse (or in the case of RSUs, an equivalent number of shares of the Company’s common stock will be issued to the recipient). The Company recognizes compensation cost, net of estimated forfeitures based on the fair value (which approximates the current market price) of the Restricted Shares (and RSUs) on the date of grant ratably over the requisite service period based on the probability of achieving the performance goals.

Changes in the probability of achieving the performance goals from period to period will result in corresponding changes in compensation expense. The employment-based restricted shares vest one-third on each of the first three anniversaries of the date of grant, provided the participant is employed by the Company on such date. In the event of a change in control (as defined in the Plan) prior to the date the Restricted Shares vest, all of the Restricted Shares will vest and the restrictions on transfer will lapse with respect to such vested shares on the date of the change in control, provided that participant is employed by the Company on the date of the change in control.

If the participant’s employment with the Company is terminated for any reason, either by the Company or participant, prior to the date on which the Restricted Shares have vested and the restrictions have lapsed with respect to such vested shares, any Restricted Shares remaining subject to the restrictions (together with any dividends paid thereon) will be forfeited, unless there has been a change in control prior to such date.

The following table summarizes the status of nonvested Restricted Shares/RSUs as of December 31, 2011 and for the year then ended:

 

 

Nonvested Restricted Shares / RSUs    Shares (000s)      Weighted
Average Grant-
Date Fair
Value
 

 

 

Nonvested at January 1, 2011

     653          $ 20.30     

Granted

     339          $ 18.68     

Vested

     (199)         $ 18.02     

Forfeited or expired

             $ -     
  

 

 

    

Nonvested at December 31, 2011

     793          $   20.39     
  

 

 

    

The following table summarizes the weighted average grant-date fair value of the Restricted Shares/RSUs granted and the total fair value of the Restricted Shares/RSUs that vested (in thousands, except per Restricted Share/RSU amounts):

 

 

00000000000 00000000000 00000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Weighted average grant-date fair value per Restricted Share/RSU

     $   18.68           $   23.88           $ 19.69     

Fair value of Restricted Stock/RSUs vested

     $ 4,392           $ 4,765           $ 3,634     

As of December 31, 2011, based on the probability of achieving the performance goals, there was $12.7 million of total unrecognized compensation cost, net of estimated forfeitures, related to nonvested Restricted Shares/RSUs granted under the Plan. This cost is expected to be recognized over a weighted average period of 1.6 years.

2004 Non-Employee Director Fee Plan The Company’s 2004 Non-Employee Director Fee Plan (the “2004 Fee Plan”) provides that all new non-employee directors joining the Board will receive an initial grant of shares of common stock on the date the new director is elected or appointed, the number of which will be determined by

 

108


Table of Contents

dividing $60,000 by the closing price of the Company’s common stock on the trading day immediately preceding the date a new director is elected or appointed, rounded to the nearest whole number of shares. The initial grant of shares vests in twelve equal quarterly installments, one-twelfth on the date of grant and an additional one-twelfth on each successive third monthly anniversary of the date of grant. The award lapses with respect to all unvested shares in the event the non-employee director ceases to be a director of the Company, and any unvested shares are forfeited.

The 2004 Fee Plan also provides that each non-employee director will receive, on the day after the annual shareholders meeting, an annual retainer for service as a non-employee director (the “Annual Retainer”). The Annual Retainer consists of shares of the Company’s common stock and cash. Prior to May 20, 2011, the total value of the Annual Retainer was $77,500, payable $32,500 in cash and the remainder paid in stock, the amount of which was determined by dividing $45,000 by the closing price of the Company’s common stock on the date of the annual meeting of shareholders, rounded to the nearest whole number of shares. On May 20, 2011, upon the recommendation of the Compensation and Human Resource Development Committee, the Board adopted the Fourth Amended and Restated 2004 Non-Employee Director Fee Plan, which increased the cash component of the Annual Retainer by $17,500, resulting in a total Annual Retainer of $95,000, of which $50,000 is payable in cash, and the remainder paid in stock. The method of calculating the number of shares constituting the equity portion of the Annual Retainer remained unchanged.

In addition to the Annual Retainer award, the 2004 Fee Plan also provides for any non-employee Chairman of the Board to receive an additional annual cash award of $100,000, and each non-employee director serving on a committee of the Board to receive an additional annual cash award. The additional annual cash award for the Chairperson of the Audit Committee is $20,000 and Audit Committee members’ are entitled to an annual cash award of $10,000. Prior to May 20, 2011, the annual cash awards for the Chairpersons of the Compensation and Human Resource Development Committee, Finance Committee and Nominating and Corporate Governance Committee were $12,500 and the members of such committees were entitled to an annual cash award of $7,500. On May 20, 2011, the Board increased the additional annual cash award to the Chairperson of the Compensation and Human Resource Development Committee to $15,000. All other additional cash awards remained unchanged.

The annual grant of cash, including all amounts paid to a non-employee Chairman of the Board and all amounts paid to non-employee directors serving on committees of the Board, vests in four equal quarterly installments, one-fourth on the day following the annual meeting of shareholders, and an additional one-fourth on each successive third monthly anniversary of the date of grant. The annual grant of shares paid to non-employee directors vests in eight equal quarterly installments, one-eighth on the day following the annual meeting of shareholders, and an additional one-eighth on each successive third monthly anniversary of the date of grant. The award lapses with respect to all unpaid cash and unvested shares in the event the non-employee director ceases to be a director of the company, and any unvested shares and unpaid cash are forfeited.

The Board may pay additional cash compensation to any non-employee director for services on behalf of the Board over and above those typically expected of directors, including but not limited to service on a special committee of the Board.

Prior to 2008, the grants were comprised of CSUs rather than shares of common stock. A CSU is a bookkeeping entry on the Company’s books that records the equivalent of one share of common stock.

The following table summarizes the status of the nonvested CSUs and share awards as of December 31, 2011 and for the year then ended:

 

 

Nonvested Common Stock Units / Share Awards    Shares (000s)      Weighted
Average Grant-
Date Fair
Value
 

 

 

Nonvested at January 1, 2011

     18          $   18.67     

Granted

     21          $ 21.83     

Vested

     (23)         $ 19.47     

Forfeited or expired

             $ -     
  

 

 

    

Nonvested at December 31, 2011

     16          $ 21.08     
  

 

 

    

 

109


Table of Contents

The following table summarizes the weighted average grant-date fair value of the CSUs and share awards granted and the total fair value of the CSUs and share awards that vested during the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009 (in thousands, except per CSU/share award amounts):

 

 

000000000000 000000000000 000000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Weighted average grant-date fair value per Common Stock Unit/Share

     $   21.83           $   19.11           $   16.76     

Fair value of Common Stock Units/Shares vested

     $ 407           $ 458           $ 326     

As of December 31, 2011, there was $0.3 million of total unrecognized compensation costs, net of estimated forfeitures, related to nonvested CSUs granted since March 2008 under the Plan. This cost is expected to be recognized over a weighted average period of 1.0 years.

Deferred Compensation Plan The Company’s non-qualified Deferred Compensation Plan (the “Deferred Compensation Plan”), which is not shareholder-approved, was adopted by the Board of Directors effective December 17, 1998 and amended on March 29, 2006 and May 23, 2006. It provides certain eligible employees the ability to defer any portion of their compensation until the participant’s retirement, termination, disability or death, or a change in control of the Company. Using the Company’s common stock, the Company matches 50% of the amounts deferred by certain senior management participants on a quarterly basis up to a total of $12,000 per year for the president and senior vice presidents and $7,500 per year for vice presidents (participants below the level of vice president are not eligible to receive matching contributions from the Company). Matching contributions and the associated earnings vest over a seven year service period. Deferred compensation amounts used to pay benefits, which are held in a rabbi trust, include investments in various mutual funds and shares of the Company’s common stock (See Note 13, Investments Held in Rabbi Trusts.) As of December 31, 2011 and 2010, liabilities of $4.2 million and $3.4 million, respectively, of the Deferred Compensation Plan were recorded in “Accrued employee compensation and benefits” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets.

Additionally, the Company’s common stock match associated with the Deferred Compensation Plan, with a carrying value of approximately $1.2 million and $1.0 million at December 31, 2011 and 2010, respectively, is included in “Treasury stock” in the accompanying Consolidated Balance Sheets.

The following table summarizes the status of the nonvested common stock issued as of December 31, 2011 and for the year then ended:

 

 

Nonvested Common Stock    Shares (000s)      Weighted
Average Grant-
Date Fair
Value
 

 

 

Nonvested at January 1, 2011

             $   18.00     

Granted

     11          $ 18.93     

Vested

     (11)         $ 18.36     

Forfeited or expired

             $ -     
  

 

 

    

Nonvested at December 31, 2011

     8          $ 18.30     
  

 

 

    

The following table summarizes the weighted average grant-date fair value of the common stock awarded, the total fair value of the common stock that vested and the cash used to settle the Company’s obligation under the Deferred Compensation Plan (in thousands, except per common stock amounts):

 

 

000000000000 000000000000 000000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Weighted average grant-date fair value per common stock

     $   18.93           $   18.91           $   17.77     

Fair value of common stock vested

     $ 169           $ 185           $ 227     

Cash used to settle the obligation

     $ 2           $ 32           $ -     

As of December 31, 2011, there was $0.1 million of total unrecognized compensation cost, net of estimated forfeitures, related to nonvested common stock granted under the Deferred Compensation Plan. This cost is expected to be recognized over a weighted average period of 3.8 years.

 

110


Table of Contents

Note 27. Segments and Geographic Information

The Company operates within two regions, the Americas and EMEA. Each region represents a reportable segment comprised of aggregated regional operating segments, which portray similar economic characteristics. The Company aligns its business into two segments to effectively manage the business and support the customer care needs of every client and to respond to the demands of the Company’s global customers.

The reportable segments consist of (1) the Americas, which includes the United States, Canada, Latin America, Australia and the Asia Pacific Rim, and provides outsourced customer contact management solutions (with an emphasis on technical support and customer service) and technical staffing and (2) EMEA, which includes Europe, the Middle East and Africa, and provides outsourced customer contact management solutions (with an emphasis on technical support and customer service) and fulfillment services. The sites within Latin America, India and the Asia Pacific Rim are included in the Americas segment given the nature of the business and client profile, which is primarily made up of U.S.-based companies that are using the Company’s services in these locations to support their customer contact management needs.

 

111


Table of Contents

Information about the Company’s reportable segments for the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009 is as follows (in thousands):

 

 

     Americas      EMEA      Other (1)      Consolidated  

Year Ended December 31, 2011:

           

Revenues (2)

     $ 963,142              $ 206,125                 $ 1,169,267        

Percentage of revenues

     82.4%          17.6%             100.0%    

Depreciation and amortization (2) 

     $ 47,747              $ 5,052                 $ 52,799        

Income (loss) from continuing operations

     $ 115,727              $ (3,746)             $ (46,446)         $ 65,535        

Other (expense), net

           (1,879)         (1,879)       

Income taxes

           (11,342)         (11,342)       
           

 

 

 

Income from continuing operations, net of taxes

              52,314        

Income (loss) from discontinued operations, net of taxes (3)

     $ 559              $ (4,532)                (3,973)       
           

 

 

 

Net income

              $ 48,341        
           

 

 

 

Total assets as of December 31, 2011

     $   1,112,252              $   1,131,719              $   (1,474,841)         $ 769,130        
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Year Ended December 31, 2010:

           

Revenues (2)

     $ 934,329              $ 187,582                 $   1,121,911        

Percentage of revenues

     83.3%          16.7%             100.0%    

Depreciation and amortization (2) 

     $ 49,910              $ 4,728                 $ 54,638        

Income (loss) from continuing operations

     $ 108,167              $ (5,548)             $ (64,638)         $ 37,981        

Other (expense), net

           (9,669)         (9,669)       

Income taxes

           (2,197)         (2,197)       
           

 

 

 

Income from continuing operations, net of taxes

              26,115        

(Loss) from discontinued operations, net of tax (3)

     $ (6,476)             $ (6,417)             (23,495)         (36,388)       
           

 

 

 

Net (loss)

              $ (10,273)       
           

 

 

 

Total assets as of December 31, 2010

     $ 1,357,709              $ 1,112,392              $ (1,675,501)         $ 794,600        
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Year Ended December 31, 2009:

           

Revenues (2)

     $ 565,022              $ 204,331                 $ 769,353        

Percentage of revenues

     73.4%          26.6%             100.0%    

Depreciation and amortization (2) 

     $ 20,290              $ 4,427                 $ 24,717        

Income (loss) from continuing operations

     $ 101,388              $ 13,285              $ (43,501)         $ 71,172        

Other (expense), net

           (387)         (387)       

Income taxes

           (26,118)         (26,118)       
           

 

 

 

Income from continuing operations, net of taxes

              44,667        

Income (loss) from discontinued operations, net of taxes

     $ (2,931)             $ 1,475                 (1,456)       
           

 

 

 

Net income

              $ 43,211        
           

 

 

 

Total assets as of December 31, 2009

     $ 711,253              $ 842,608              $ (881,390)         $ 672,471        
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

(1)

Other items (including corporate costs, provision for regulatory penalties, impairment costs, other income and expense, and income taxes) are shown for purposes of reconciling to the Company’s consolidated totals as shown in the table above for the three years in the period ended December 31, 2011. The accounting policies of the reportable segments are the same as those described in Note 1 to the accompanying Consolidated Financial Statements. Inter-segment revenues are not material to the Americas and EMEA segment results. The Company evaluates the performance of its geographic segments based on revenue and income (loss) from operations, and does not include segment assets or other income and expense items for management reporting purposes.

(2)

Revenues and depreciation and amortization include results from continuing operations only.

(3)

Includes the income (loss) from discontinued operations, net of taxes, as well as the gain (loss) on sale of discontinued operations, net of taxes.

 

112


Table of Contents

Revenues by segment from AT&T Corporation, a major provider of communication services for which the Company provides various customer support services, were as follows (in thousands):

 

 

000000000000 000000000000 000000000000 000000000000 000000000000 000000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  
     Amount      Percentage      Amount      Percentage      Amount      Percentage  

Americas

     $ 129,331           11.1%           $ 147,673           13.2%           $ 102,123           13.3%     

EMEA

     3,343           0.2%           6,457           0.5%           9,206           1.2%     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 132,674           11.3%           $ 154,130           13.7%           $ 111,329           14.5%     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

The Company’s top ten clients accounted for approximately 45% of its consolidated revenues in 2011, an increase from 42% in 2010. The loss of (or the failure to retain a significant amount of business with) any of the Company’s key clients could have a material adverse effect on its performance. Many of the Company’s contracts contain penalty provisions for failure to meet minimum service levels and are cancelable by the client at any time or on short notice. Also, clients may unilaterally reduce their use of the Company’s services under its contracts without penalty.

Information about the Company’s operations by geographic location is as follows (in thousands):

 

 

0000000000000 0000000000000 0000000000000
     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Revenues: (1)

        

United States

     $ 299,606           $ 293,179           $ 139,023     

Argentina (2)

     -           7,670           12,436     

Canada

     203,313           195,301           101,064     

Costa Rica

     94,133           89,830           77,528     

El Salvador

     43,016           35,366           30,770     

Philippines

     244,936           249,010           182,095     

Australia

     25,892           18,639           -     

Mexico

     23,133           20,514           -     

Other

     29,113           24,820           22,106     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total Americas

     963,142           934,329           565,022     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Germany

     76,362           65,145           73,250     

United Kingdom

     41,476           46,847           49,872     

Sweden

     30,072           27,311           27,905     

Netherlands

     14,268           14,026           21,284     

Hungary

     6,695           8,186           9,653     

Romania

     9,038           3,743           -     

Other

     28,214           22,324           22,367     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total EMEA

     206,125           187,582           204,331     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 1,169,267           $ 1,121,911           $ 769,353     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

(1)

Revenues are attributed to countries based on location of customer, except for revenues for Costa Rica, Philippines, China and India which are primarily comprised of customers located in the U.S., but serviced by centers in those respective geographic locations.

(2)

Revenues attributable to Argentina relate to clients retained by the Company subsequent to the sale of the Argentine operations, which were fully migrated to other countries during 2011.

 

113


Table of Contents
     December 31,  
     2011      2010  

Long-Lived Assets: (1)

     

United States

     $ 70,768           $ 84,285     

Canada

     22,943           26,748     

Costa Rica

     6,664           7,063     

El Salvador

     3,416           3,823     

Philippines

     12,348           21,870     

Australia

     2,378           2,304     

Mexico

     2,317           2,566     

Other

     3,512           3,182     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total Americas

     124,346           151,841     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Germany

     2,362           2,975     

United Kingdom

     4,969           5,211     

Sweden

     810           854     

Spain

     -           1,183     

Netherlands

     95           217     

Hungary

     214           415     

Romania

     1,056           1,340     

Other

     1,700           2,419     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Total EMEA

     11,206           14,614     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $         135,552           $         166,455     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

(1)

Long-lived assets include property and equipment, net, and intangibles, net.

 

     December 31,  
     2011      2010  

Goodwill:

     

Americas

     $ 121,342           $ 122,303     

EMEA

     -           -     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $         121,342           $         122,303     
  

 

 

    

 

 

 

Revenues for the Company’s products and services are as follows (in thousands):

 

 

     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Outsourced customer contract management services

     $       1,145,002           $       1,096,869           $         742,841     

Fulfillment services

     16,717           16,934           17,376     

Enterprise support services

     7,548           8,108           9,136     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $ 1,169,267           $ 1,121,911           $ 769,353     
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

Note 28. Other (Expense)

Gains and losses resulting from foreign currency transactions are recorded in “Other (expense)” in the accompanying Consolidated Statements of Operations during the period in which they occur. Other (expense) consists of the following (in thousands):

 

 

     Years Ended December 31,  
     2011      2010      2009  

Other (expense):

        

Foreign currency transaction gains (losses)

     $ (749)         $ (2,108)         $ 524    

(Losses) on foreign currency derivative instruments not designated as hedges

     (1,444)         (4,532)         (1,928)   

Other miscellaneous income

     94          733          1,121    
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 
     $     (2,099)         $     (5,907)         $       (283)   
  

 

 

    

 

 

    

 

 

 

 

114


Table of Contents

Note 29. Related Party Transactions

The Company paid John H. Sykes, the founder, former Chairman and Chief Executive Officer and current significant shareholder of the Company and the father of Charles Sykes, President and Chief Executive Officer of the Company, $0.1 million and less than $0.1 million, for the use of his private jet during the years ended December 31, 2010 and 2009, respectively, (none in 2011) which is based on two times fuel costs and other actual costs incurred for each trip.

In January 2008, the Company entered into a lease for a customer contact management center located in Kingstree, South Carolina. The landlord, Kingstree Office One, LLC, is an entity controlled by John H. Sykes. The lease payments on the 20 year lease were negotiated at or below market rates, and the lease is cancellable at the option of the Company. There are significant penalties for early cancellation which decrease over time. The Company paid $0.4 million, $0.4 million and $0.4 million to the landlord during the years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009, respectively, under the terms of the lease.

 

115


Table of Contents

 

Schedule Valuation and Qualifying Accounts

Schedule II — Valuation and Qualifying Accounts

Years ended December 31, 2011, 2010 and 2009

 

(in thousands)    Balance at
Beginning
of Period
     Charged
(Credited)
to Costs
and
Expenses
     Additions
(Deductions)
     Beginning
Balance of
Acquired
Company
     Balance at
End of
Period
 

 

    

 

 

 

Allowance for doubtful accounts:

              

Year ended December 31, 2011

   $ 3,939       $ 450        $ (85) (1)       $ -           $ 4,304     

Year ended December 31, 2010

     3,530         170          239  (2)         -           3,939     

Year ended December 31, 2009

     3,071         1,022          (563) (2)         -           3,530     

Valuation allowance for net deferred tax assets:

              

Year ended December 31, 2011

   $ 60,091       $ (17,758)       $ (3,789)(1)       $ -           $   38,544     

Year ended December 31, 2010

     32,126         12,256          -                15,709         60,091     

Year ended December 31, 2009

     30,618         1,508          -                -           32,126     

Reserves for value added tax receivables:

              

Year ended December 31, 2011

   $ 2,338       $ 504        $ (487)           $ -           $ 2,355     

Year ended December 31, 2010

     1,881         551          (94)             -           2,338     

Year ended December 31, 2009

     1,853         536          (508)             -           1,881     

 

(1)

Net write-offs and recoveries and the impact of the reclassification of the Company’s Spanish operations to assets held for sale in 2011.

(2)

Net write-offs and recoveries.

 

116